Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n church_n heaven_n peter_n 4,199 5 7.9041 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A16049 The Nevv Testament of Iesus Christ, translated faithfully into English, out of the authentical Latin, according to the best corrected copies of the same, diligently conferred vvith the Greeke and other editions in diuers languages; vvith arguments of bookes and chapters, annotations, and other necessarie helpes, for the better vnderstanding of the text, and specially for the discouerie of the corruptions of diuers late translations, and for cleering the controversies in religion, of these daies: in the English College of Rhemes; Bible. N.T. English. Douai. Martin, Gregory, d. 1582. 1582 (1582) STC 2884; ESTC S102491 1,123,479 852

There are 25 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

be_v little_a child_n present_v to_o he_o 13._o that_o he_o shall_v ″_o impose_v hand_n upon_o they_o &_o pray_v 15._o and_o the_o disciple_n rebuke_v they_o ✝_o verse_n 14_o but_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o suffer_v the_o little_a child_n and_o stay_v they_o not_o from_o come_v unto_o i_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v for_o such_o ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o when_o he_o have_v impose_v hand_n upon_o they_o he_o depart_v from_o thence_o ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o *_o behold_v one_o come_v and_o say_v to_o he_o 17._o good_a master_n what_o good_a shall_v i_o do_v that_o i_o may_v have_v life_n everlasting_a ✝_o verse_n 17_o who_o say_v to_o he_o 18._o what_o ask_v thou_o i_o of_o good_a one_o be_v good_a god_n but_o 15._o if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o he_o say_v to_o he_o 13._o which_o and_o jesus_n say_v thou_o shall_v not_o murder_v thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v advoutrie_n thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_v ✝_o verse_n 19_o honour_n thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n 18._o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o ✝_o verse_n 20_o the_o young_a man_n say_v to_o he_o all_o these_o have_v i_o keep_v from_o my_o youth_n what_o be_v yet_o want_v unto_o i_o ✝_o verse_n 21_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o ″_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v perfect_a go_v sell_v the_o thing_n that_o thou_o have_v &_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o thou_o shall_v have_v treasure_n in_o heaven_n and_o come_v ″_o follow_v i_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o and_o when_o the_o young_a man_n have_v hear_v this_o word_n he_o go_v away_o sad_a for_o he_o have_v many_o possession_n ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n ✝_o amen_n i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o a_o rich_a man_n shall_v hardly_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ✝_o verse_n 24_o and_o again_o i_o say_v to_o you_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n 24._o then_o for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ✝_o verse_n 25_o and_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v this_o the_o disciple_n maruel_v very_o much_o say_v who_o then_o can_v be_v save_v ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o jesus_n behold_v say_v to_o they_o with_o man_n this_o be_v impossible_a but_o with_o god_n ″_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a ✝_o verse_n 27_o then_o peter_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o jan._n behold_v we_o have_v ″_o leave_v all_o thing_n &_o have_v follow_v thou_o ″_o what_o therefore_o shall_v we_o have_v ✝_o verse_n 28_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o abbot_n that_o you_o which_o have_v follow_v i_o in_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o his_o majesty_n you_o ″_o also_o shall_v sit_v upon_o twelue_v seat_n judge_v the_o twelue_fw-mi tribe_n of_o israel_n ✝_o verse_n 29_o and_o every_o one_o that_o have_v leave_v house_n or_o brethren_n or_o sister_n or_o father_n or_o mother_n or_o jovin_n wife_n or_o child_n 31._o or_o land_n for_o my_o name_n sake_n shall_v receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_n and_o shall_v possess_v life_n everlasting_a ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 30_o and_o *_o many_o shall_v be_v first_o 30._o that_o be_v last_o and_o last_o that_o be_v first_o annotation_n chap._n xix_o 6._o not_o man_n separate_v this_o inseparability_n betwixtman_n and_o wife_n rise_v of_o that_o that_o wedlock_n be_v a_o sacrament_n aug._n li._n 2._o de_fw-la pec_fw-la origine_fw-la c._n 34._o to_o 7._o de●upt_v &_o concupis_fw-la li._n 1._o c._n 10._o 9_o but_o for_o fornication_n unlawful_a for_o advoutrie_n one_o may_n dimisse_fw-la a_o other_o mat._n 5._o but_o neither_o party_n can_v marry_v again_o for_o any_o cause_n during_o life_n aug._n li_n 11._o the_o adult_n coniug_v c._n 21._o 22._o 24._o for_o the_o which_o unlawful_a act_n of_o marry_v again_o fabiola_n that_o noble_a matron_n of_o rome_n albeit_o she_o be_v the_o innocent_a part_n fabiola_n do_v public_a penance_n as_o s._n hierom_n write_v in_o her_o high_a commendation_n therefore_o and_o in_o s._n paul_n ro._n 7._o it_o be_v plain_a that_o she_o which_o be_v with_o a_o other_o man_n her_o husband_n yet_o live_v shall_v be_v call_v a_o advouteresse_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n 11._o not_o all_o take_v whosoever_o have_v not_o this_o gift_n give_v they_o it_o be_v either_o for_o that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v it_o or_o for_o that_o they_o fulfil_v not_o that_o which_o they_o will_v and_o they_o that_o have_v this_o gift_n or_o attain_v to_o this_o word_n have_v it_o of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o free_a wil._n aug._n li._n the_o great_a &_o lib._n arbit_n c._n 4._o so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a no_o man_n be_v exclude_v from_o this_o gift_n mat._n but_o as_o origen_n here_o say_v it_o be_v give_v to_o all_o that_o ask_v for_o it_o contrary_a to_o our_o adversary_n that_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a and_o that_o for_o excuse_v of_o break_v their_o vow_n wicked_o say_v they_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n 12._o geld_a themselves_o chastity_n they_o geld_v themselves_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o vow_v chastity_n aug._n de_fw-fr virginitate_fw-la c._n 24._o which_o prove_v those_o kind_n of_o vow_n to_o be_v both_o lawful_a and_o also_o more_o meritorious_a and_o more_o sure_a to_o obtain_v life_n everlasting_a than_o the_o state_n of_o wedlock_n contrary_a to_o our_o adu_fw-la in_o all_o respect_n 14._o he_o that_o can_v precept_n it_o be_v not_o say_v of_o the_o precept_n keep_v they_o who_o can_v for_o they_o be_v necessary_a under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o be_v keep_v temp_n but_o of_o counsel_n only_a as_o of_o virginity_n abstain_v from_o flesh_n and_o wine_n and_o of_o geve_v all_o a_o man_n good_n away_o to_o the_o poor_a it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o can_v attain_v to_o it_o let_v he_o do_v it_o which_o be_v counsel_n only_o not_o a_o commandment_n contrary_n to_o our_o adu_fw-la that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o counsel_n but_o only_a precept_n 13._o impose_v blessing_n they_o know_v the_o valour_n of_o christ_n blessing_n and_o therefore_o bring_v their_o child_n to_o he_o as_o good_a christian_a people_n have_v at_o all_o time_n bring_v their_o child_n to_o bishop_n to_o have_v their_o blessing_n see_v annotation_n before_o chap._n 10_o 12._o and_o of_o religious_a man_n blessing_n see_v russin_n li._n 2._o c._n 1._o hist_o s._n hierom_n in_o epitaph_n paulae_fw-la c._n 7._o &_o in_o vit_fw-mi hilarionis_fw-la theodoret_n in_o historia_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la num_fw-la 8._o 21._o if_o thou_o will_v be_v perfect_a perfection_n loe_o he_o make_v a_o plain_a difference_n between_o keep_v the_o commandment_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o man_n and_o be_v perfect_a which_o he_o counsele_v only_o to_o they_o that_o wil._n and_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o great_a perfection_n which_o religious_a man_n do_v profess_v according_a to_o christ_n counsel_n here_o leave_v all_o thing_n and_o follow_v he_o 21._o follow_v i_o thus_o to_o follow_v christ_n be_v to_o be_v without_o wife_n and_o care_n of_o child_n to_o lack_v propriety_n and_o to_o live_v in_o common_a and_o this_o have_v great_a reward_n in_o heaven_n about_o other_o state_n of_o life_n which_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o apostle_n follow_v and_o himself_o and_o that_o he_o exhort_v other_o to_o it_o as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o he_o aug._n ep_v 19_o in_o fine_a &_o in_o ps_n 103_o conc_n 3._o post_n med_n 26._o all_o thing_n possible_a this_o of_o the_o camel_n through_o a_o nedels_n eye_n be_v possible_a to_o god_n although_o he_o neither_o have_v do_v it_o nor_o by_o like_a will_v do_v it_o make_v against_o the_o blasphemous_a infidelity_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o say_v god_n can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o he_o have_v do_v or_o will_v do_v we_o see_v also_o that_o god_n can_v bring_v a_o camel_n through_o a_o nedels_n eye_n and_o therefore_o his_o body_n through_o a_o door_n and_o our_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n shut_v and_o out_o of_o his_o mother_n a_o virgin_n and_o general_o above_o nature_n and_o contrary_a to_o nature_n do_v with_o his_o body_n as_o he_o listen_v 27._o leave_v al._n reward_n this_o perfection_n of_o leave_v all_o thing_n the_o apostle_n vow_v aug._n li._n 17._o de_fw-fr ciu._n dei_fw-la c._n 4._o 27._o what_o shall_v we_o have_v they_o leave_v all_o thing_n in_o respect_n of_o reward_n and_o christ_n do_v well_o allow_v it_o in_o they_o by_o his_o answer_n 28._o you_o also_o shall_v sit_v 121._o note_v that_o not_o only_a christ_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o proper_a judge_n of_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a but_o with_o he_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o perfect_a
of_o the_o palsy_n son_n ●_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o there_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o scribe_n sit_v there_o and_o think_v in_o their_o heart_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o why_o do_v he_o speak_v so_o 4._o he_o blaspheme_v *_o who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o only_a god_n 25._o ✝_o verse_n 8_o which_o by_o and_o by_o jesus_n know_v in_o his_o spirit_n that_o they_o so_o think_v within_o themselves_o say_v to_o they_o why_o think_v you_o these_o thing_n in_o your_o heart_n ✝_o verse_n 9_o whether_o be_v easy_a to_o say_v to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o or_o to_o say_v arise_v take_v up_o thy_o couch_n and_o walk_v ✝_o verse_n 10_o but_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o ●_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n ●_o in_o earth_n to_o forgive_v sin_n he_o say_v to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o arise_v take_v up_o thy_o couch_n and_o go_v into_o thy_o house_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o forthwith_o he_o arise_v and_o take_v up_o his_o couch_n go_v his_o way_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o so_o that_o all_o marueled_a and_o glorify_a god_n say_v that_o we_o never_o see_v the_o like_a ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o he_o go_v forth_o again_o to_o the_o sea_n and_o all_o the_o multitude_n come_v to_o he_o and_o he_o teach_v they_o ✝_o verse_n 14_o and_o when_o he_o pass_v by_o 9_o *_o he_o saw_n levi_n of_o alphaeus_n sit_v at_o the_o custom_n place_n 27_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o follow_v i_o and_o rise_v up_o he_o follow_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o he_o sit_v at_o meat_n in_o his_o house_n many_o publican_n and_o sinner_n do_v sit_v down_o together_o with_o jesus_n and_o his_o disciple_n for_o they_o be_v many_o who_o also_o follow_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o scribe_n and_o the_o pharisee_n see_v that_o he_o do_v eat_v with_o publican_n and_o sinner_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n why_o do_v your_o master_n eat_v and_o drink_v with_o publican_n and_o sinner_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o jesus_n hear_v this_o say_v to_o they_o the_o whole_a have_v not_o need_v of_o a_o physician_n but_o they_o that_o be_v ill_a at_o ease_n for_o i_o come_v not_o to_o call_v the_o just_a but_o sinner_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o *_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n and_o the_o pharisee_n do_v use_v to_o fast_o 13_o and_o they_o come_v 32_o and_o say_v to_o he_o why_o do_v the_o disciple_n of_o john_n and_o of_o the_o pharisee_n fast_o but_o thy_o disciple_n do_v not_o fast_o ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o why_o can_v the_o child_n of_o the_o marriage_n fast_o as_o long_o as_o the_o bridegroom_n be_v with_o they_o so_o long_a time_n as_o they_o have_v the_o bridegroom_n with_o they_o they_o can_v not_o fast_o ✝_o verse_n 20_o but_o the_o day_n will_v come_v when_o the_o bridegroom_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o and_o then_o they_o shall_v 15._o fast_v in_o those_o day_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o no_o body_n sow_v a_o piece_n of_o raw_n cloth_n to_o a_o old_a garment_n otherwise_o he_o take_v away_o the_o new_a piece_n from_o the_o old_a and_o there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a rent_n ✝_o verse_n 22_o and_o no_o body_n put_v new_a wine_n into_o old_a bottle_n otherwise_o the_o wine_n burst_v the_o bottle_n and_o the_o wine_n will_v be_v shed_v and_o the_o bottle_n will_v be_v lose_v but_o new_a wine_n must_v be_v put_v into_o new_a bottle_n ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o *_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v again_o when_o he_o walk_v through_o the_o corn_n on_o the_o sabbath_n 1_o and_o his_o disciple_n begin_v to_o go_v forward_o and_o to_o pluck_v the_o ear_n 1._o ✝_o verse_n 24_o and_o the_o pharisee_n say_v to_o he_o behold_v why_o do_v they_o on_o the_o sabbath_n that_o which_o be_v not_o lawful_a ✝_o verse_n 25_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o do_v you_o never_o read_v what_o david_n do_v when_o he_o be_v ●_o in_o necessity_n and_o himself_o verse_n 26_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o 6._o how_o *_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n under_o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o do_v ear_n the_o loaf_n of_o proposition_n which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o eat_v *_o but_o for_o the_o priest_n and_o do_v give_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v with_o he_o 9_o ✝_o verse_n 27_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o the_o sabbath_n be_v make_v for_o man_n and_o not_o man_n for_o the_o sabbath_n ✝_o verse_n 28_o therefore_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v he_o lord_n of_o the_o sabbath_n also_o annotation_n chap._n ii_o 4._o vncover_v such_o diligence_n ought_v to_o be_v use_v to_o bring_v sinner_n to_o christ_n in_o his_o sacrament_n as_o be_v use_v to_o procure_v this_o man_n and_o other_o by_o christ_n the_o health_n of_o their_o body_n 5._o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n such_o as_o this_o man_n be_v in_o body_n by_o dissolution_n of_o his_o limb_n such_o also_o be_v he_o in_o soul_n by_o the_o noisome_a desire_n of_o the_o world_n occupy_v his_o hart_n and_o withdraw_v he_o from_o all_o good_a work_n aug._n de_fw-fr pastor_n c._n 6_o to_o 9_o 5._o thy_o sin_n hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o christ_n heal_v this_o sick_a man_n first_o in_o his_o soul_n before_o he_o take_v away_o his_o bodily_a infirmity_n sickness_n which_o may_v be_v a_o instruction_n for_o all_o man_n in_o bodily_a disease_n first_o to_o call_v for_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v medicine_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o hereby_o also_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o many_o disease_n come_v for_o sin_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v heal_v till_o the_o sin_n be_v remit_v 10._o the_o son_n of_o man_n as_o christ_n prove_v unto_o they_o that_o himself_o as_o man_n and_o not_o as_o god_n only_o have_v power_n to_o remit_v sin_n sin_n by_o that_o in_o all_o their_o sight_n he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v miracle_n and_o make_v the_o sick-man_n sudden_o arise_v so_o the_o apostle_n have_v power_n grant_v they_o to_o do_v miracle_n though_o they_o be_v not_o god_n may_v in_o like_a manner_n have_v authority_n from_o god_n to_o remit_v sin_n not_o as_o god_n but_o as_o god_n minister_n 10._o in_o earth_n ministry_n this_o power_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v to_o remit_v sin_n in_o earth_n be_v never_o take_v from_o he_o but_o dure_v still_o in_o his_o sacrament_n and_o minister_n by_o who_o he_o remit_v sin_n in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o in_o heaven_n only_o for_o concern_v sin_n there_o be_v one_o court_n of_o conscience_n in_o earth_n and_o a_o other_o in_o heaven_n and_o the_o judgement_n in_o heaven_n follow_v and_o approve_v this_o on_o earth_n as_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o peter_n first_o 19_o and_o then_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n 1._o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n whereupon_o s._n hierom_n say_v that_o priest_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n judge_v after_o a_o sort_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o s._n chrysost_o li._n 3_o de_fw-fr sacerd._n paul_fw-mi post_fw-la princip_n more_o at_o large_a 25._o in_o necessity_n 28._o in_o necessity_n many_o thing_n be_v do_v without_o sin_n which_o else_o may_v not_o be_v do_v and_o so_o *_o the_o very_a chalice_n and_o consecrate_a jewel_n and_o vessel_n of_o the_o church_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n be_v by_o lawful_a authority_n turn_v to_o profane_a use_n which_o otherwise_o to_o alienate_v to_o a_o man_n private_a commodity_n be_v sacrilege_n chap._n iii_o the_o blind_a pharisees_n seek_v his_o death_n for_o do_v good_a upon_o the_o sabbath_n he_o meek_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n where_o the_o people_n that_o flock_n unto_o he_o and_o his_o miracle_n be_v innumerable_a 13_o yea_o to_o his_o twelue_fw-mi also_o have_v need_n of_o more_o workman_n he_o geve_v power_n to_o work_v miracle_n ●0_n he_o so_o occupi_v himself_o for_o soul_n that_o his_o kin_n think_v he_o mad_a 22_o the_o scribe_n of_o jerusalem_n come_v so_o far_o and_o yet_o have_v nothing_o but_o absurd_o to_o blaspeme_v his_o cast_n out_o of_o devil_n to_o their_o own_o damnation_n ●1_n that_o the_o jew_n shall_v not_o after_o their_o manner_n think_v it_o enough_o that_o he_o be_v of_o their_o blood_n he_o tell_v that_o such_o rather_o be_v dear_a to_o he_o as_o keep_v god_n commandment_n verse_n 1_o and_o he_o enter_v again_o into_o the_o synagogue_n 9_o and_o there_o be_v a_o man_n there_o that_o have_v a_o wither_a hand_n 6._o ✝_o verse_n 2_o and_o they_o
of_o the_o bridegroom_n this_o my_o joy_n therefore_o be_v fill_v ✝_o verse_n 30_o he_o must_v increase_v and_o i_o diminish_v ✝_o verse_n 31_o ″_o he_o that_o come_v from_o above_o be_v above_o al._n he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o be_v and_o of_o the_o earth_n he_o speak_v he_o that_o come_v from_o heaven_n be_v above_o al._n ✝_o verse_n 32_o and_o what_o he_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v that_o he_o testify_v and_o his_o testimony_n no_o man_n receive_v ✝_o verse_n 33_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v his_o testimony_n have_v sign_v that_o god_n be_v true_a ✝_o verse_n 34_o for_o he_o who_o god_n have_v send_v speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o god_n do_v not_o give_v the_o spirit_n by_o measure_n ✝_o verse_n 35_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n &_o he_o have_v give_v all_o thing_n in_o his_o hand_n ✝_o verse_n 36_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v life_n everlasting_a but_o he_o that_o be_v incredulous_a to_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n remain_v upon_o he_o annotation_n chap._n iii_o 5._o born●_n again_o of_o water_n as_o no_o man_n can_v enter_v into_o this_o world_n not_o have_v his_o life_n an_o i_o be_v in_o the_o same_o salvation_n except_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o his_o carnal_a parent_n no_o more_o can_v a_o man_n enter_v into_o the_o life_n &_o state_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n or_o attain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a unless_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o baptize_v of_o water_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o we_o see_v first_o this_o sacrament_n to_o be_v call_v our_o regeneration_n or_o second_o birth_n in_o respect_n of_o our_o natural_a and_o carnal_a which_o be_v before_o second_o that_o this_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o a_o external_a element_n of_o water_n and_o internal_a virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n wherein_o it_o excel_v johns_n baptism_n which_o have_v the_o external_a element_n but_o nor_o the_o spiritual_a grace_n three_o that_o no_o man_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n not_o into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o holy_a church_n without_o it_o whereby_o the_o *_o pelagian_o and_o caluinist_n be_v condemn_v that_o promise_v life_n everlasting_a to_o young_a child_n that_o die_v without_o baptism_n 18._o and_o all_o other_o that_o think_v only_a faith_n to_o serve_v or_o the_o external_a element_n of_o water_n superfluous_a or_o not_o necessary_a our_o saviour_n word_n be_v plain_a and_o general_a though_o in_o this_o cafe_z supply_v god_n which_o have_v not_o bind_v his_o grace_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o own_o freedom_n to_o any_o sacrament_n may_v and_o do_v accept_v they_o as_o baptize_v which_o either_o be_v martyr_v before_o they_o can_v be_v baptize_v or_o else_o depart_v this_o life_n with_o vow_n and_o desire_v to_o have_v that_o sacrament_n but_o by_o some_o remediless_a necessirie_n can_v not_o obtain_v it_o last_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o this_o sacrament_n give_v grace_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la that_o be_v of_o the_o work_n itself_o which_o all_o protestant_n deny_v because_o it_o so_o breed_v our_o spiritual_a life_n in_o god_n as_o our_o carnal_a birth_n give_v the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n 18._o it_o judge_v already_o already_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o charity_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v at_o the_o late_a day_n nor_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n 6._o but_o the_o infidel_n be_v he_o jew_n pagan_a or_o heretic_n be_v already_o if_o he_o die_v in_o his_o incredulity_n by_o his_o own_o profession_n and_o sentence_n condemn_v and_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o judgement_n either_o particular_a or_o general_a to_o be_v discuss_v according_a to_o his_o work_n of_o mercy_n do_v or_o omit_v 11●_n in_o which_o sense_n s._n paul_n faith_n that_o the_o obstinate_a heretic_n be_v condemn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n prevent_v in_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o free_a will_n the_o sentence_n both_o of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o church_n 31._o he_o that_o come_v from_o above_o grace_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v no_o marvel_v that_o man_n resort_v to_o christ_n so_o fast_o and_o make_v less_o account_n of_o i_o for_o his_o baptism_n and_o his_o preach_n and_o his_o person_n be_v all_o from_o heaven_n immediate_o he_o bring_v all_o from_o the_o very_a bosom_n mouth_n and_o substance_n of_o god_n his_o father_n whatsoever_o be_v in_o i_o be_v but_o a_o little_a drop_n of_o his_o grace_n his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n be_v above_o all_o measure_n or_o man_n gift_n even_o according_a to_o his_o manhood_n and_o all_o power_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o priesthood_n and_o all_o soveraintie_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v bestow_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o be_v man_n also_o chap._n four_o leave_v jewrie_n because_o of_o the_o pharisee_n in_o the_o way_n to_o galilee_n he_o talk_v with_o a_o samaritane_n woman_n tell_v she_o that_o he_o will_v give_v water_n of_o everlasting_a life_n 16_o showing_z himself_o to_o know_v man_n secret_n 19_o prefer_v the_o jew_n religion_n before_o the_o samaritan_n but_o we_o the_o christian_a catholic_a religion_n before_o they_o both_o 25_o and_o utter_v unto_o she_o that_o he_o be_v christ_n 28_o which_o by_o her_o testimony_n and_o his_o preach_v very_o many_o samaritan_n do_v believe_v he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n before_o tell_v his_o disciple_n of_o the_o harvest_n he_o will_v send_v they_o in_o to_z 45_o the_n galilaans_n also_o receive_v he_o where_o again_o he_o work_v his_o second_o miracle_n verse_n 1_o when_o jesus_n therefore_o understand_v that_o the_o pharisee_n hear_v that_o jesus_n make_v mo_z disciple_n and_o baptize_v they_o john_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o howbeit_o 108._o jesus_n do_v not_o baptize_v but_o his_o disciple_n ✝_o verse_n 3_o he_o leave_v jewrie_n and_o go_v again_o into_o galilee_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o he_o have_v of_o necessity_n to_o pass_v through_o samaria_n 22._o ✝_o verse_n 5_o he_o come_v therefore_o into_o a_o city_n of_o samaria_n which_o be_v call_v sichar_n lent_n *_o beside_o the_o manner_n that_o jacob_n give_v to_o joseph_n his_o son_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o there_o be_v there_o the_o fountain_n of_o jacob_n jesus_n therefore_o weary_v of_o his_o journey_n sa●e_v so_o upon_o the_o fountain_n it_o be_v about_o the_o sixth_o hour_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o there_o come_v loan_n a_o woman_n of_o samaria_n to_o draw_v water_n jesus_n say_v to_o she_o give_v i_o to_o drink_v ✝_o verse_n 8_o for_o his_o disciple_n be_v go_v into_o the_o city_n to_o high_a meat_n ✝_o verse_n 9_o therefore_o that_o samaritane_n woman_n say_v to_o he_o how_o do_v thou_o be_v a_o jewe_n ask_v of_o i_o to_o drink_v which_o be_o a_o samaritane_n woman_n for_o the_o jew_n garîzim_n do_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o samaritan_n ✝_o verse_n 10_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v to_o she_o if_o thou_o do_v know_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o who_o he_o be_v that_o say_v unto_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o drink_v thou_o perhaps_o will_v have_v ask_v of_o he_o and_o he_o will_v have_v give_v thou_o 39_o live_a water_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o the_o woman_n say_v to_o he_o sir_n neither_o haste_n thou_o wherein_o to_o draw_v and_o the_o well_o be_v deep_a whence_o have_v thou_o the_o live_a water_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o be_v thou_o great_a than_o our_o father_n jacob_n who_o give_v we_o the_o well_o and_o himself_o drink_v of_o it_o and_o his_o child_n and_o his_o cattle_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v to_o she_o every_o one_o that_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n shall_v thirst_v again_o but_o he_o that_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o i_o will_v give_v he_o shall_v not_o thirst_v for_o ever_o ✝_o verse_n 14_o but_o the_o water_n that_o i_o will_v give_v he_o shall_v become_v in_o he_o a_o fountain_n of_o water_n spring_v up_o unto_o life_n everlasting_a ✝_o verse_n 15_o the_o woman_n say_v to_o he_o lord_n give_v i_o this_o water_n that_o i_o may_v not_o thirst_v nor_o come_v hither_o to_o draw_v ✝_o verse_n 16_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o go_v call_v thy_o husband_n and_o come_v hither_o ✝_o verse_n 17_o the_o woman_n answer_v and_o say_v i_o have_v no_o husband_n jesus_n say_v to_o she_o thou_o have_v say_v well_o that_o i_o have_v no_o husband_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o for_o thou_o have_v have_v five_o husband_n and_o he_o who_o thou_o now_o have_v be_v not_o thy_o husband_n this_o thou_o have_v say_v true_o ✝_o verse_n 19_o the_o woman_n say_v to_o he_o lord_n i_o perceive_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o prophet_n ✝_o verse_n 20_o ″_o our_o father_n be_v adore_v in_o this_o mountain_n and_o you_o say_v *_o that_o at_o jerusalem_n be_v
the_o water_n thereof_o that_o a_o way_n may_v be_v prepare_v to_o the_o king_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o i_o see_v from_o the_o mouth_n he_o of_o the_o dragon_n and_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false-prophet_n three_o three_o '_o unclean_a spirit_n in_o manner_n of_o frog_n ✝_o verse_n 14_o for_o they_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n work_v sign_n and_o they_o go_v forth_o to_o the_o king_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n to_o gather_v they_o into_o battle_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n ✝_o verse_n 15_o behold_v *_o i_o come_v as_o a_o thief_n 3_o blessed_n be_v he_o that_o watch_v &_o keep_v his_o garment_n 3._o that_o he_o *_o walk_v not_o naked_a and_o they_o see_v his_o turpitude_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o shall_v gather_v they_o into_o a_o place_n which_o in_o hebrew_n be_v call_v interpretation_n armagedon_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o air_n and_o there_o come_v forth_o a_o loud_a voice_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n from_o the_o throne_n say_v it_o be_v do_v ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o there_o be_v make_v lighteninge_n and_o voice_n and_o thunder_n and_o a_o great_a earthquake_n be_v make_v such_o a_o one_o as_o never_n have_v be_v since_o man_n be_v upon_o the_o earth_n such_o a_o earthquake_n so_o great_a ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o 5._o the_o great_a city_n be_v make_v into_o three_o part_n and_o the_o city_n of_o the_o gentile_n fel._n and_o babylon_n the_o great_a come_v into_o memory_n before_o god_n 15._o *_o to_o give_v she_o the_o cup_n of_o wine_n of_o the_o indignation_n of_o his_o wrath_n ✝_o verse_n 20_o and_o every_o island_n flee_v and_o mountain_n be_v not_o find_v ✝_o verse_n 21_o and_o great_a hail_n like_o a_o talon_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o man_n and_o man_n blaspheme_v god_n for_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o hail_n because_o it_o be_v make_v exceed_o great_a chap._n xvii_o the_o harlot_n babylon_n clothe_v with_o diverse_a ornament_n 6_o and_o drunken_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n sit_v upon_o a_o beast_n that_o have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n 7_o all_o which_o thing_n the_o angel_n expound_v verse_n 1_o and_o there_o come_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o seven_o vial_n &_o speak_v with_o i_o say_v come_v i_o will_v show_v thou_o whore_n the_o damnation_n of_o the_o great_a harlot_n which_o sit_v upon_o 15._o many_o water_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v fornicate_v and_o they_o which_o inhabit_v the_o earth_n have_v be_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o whoredom_n ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o take_v i_o away_o in_o spirit_n in_o to_o the_o desert_n and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n full_a of_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o the_o woman_n be_v clothe_v round_o about_o with_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a and_o gilt_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n have_v a_o golden_a cup_n in_o her_o hand_n full_a of_o the_o abomination_n &_o filthiness_n of_o her_o fornication_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o and_o in_o her_o forehead_n a_o name_n write_v ″_o mystery_n ″_o babylon_n the_o great_a mother_n of_o the_o fornication_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o i_o see_v the_o woman_n ″_o drunken_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n and_o i_o maruel_v when_o i_o have_v see_v she_o with_o great_a admiration_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o i_o and_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o i_o why_o do_v thou_o marvel_v i_o will_v tell_v thou_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o of_o the_o beast_n that_o carry_v she_o which_o have_v the_o seven_o head_n and_o the_o ten_o horn_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o the_o beast_n which_o thou_o saw_a beast_n be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o shall_v come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o bottomeles_a depth_n and_o go_v into_o destruction_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n on_o the_o earth_n who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n from_o the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v marvel_v see_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o ✝_o verse_n 9_o and_o here_o be_v understanding_n that_o have_v wisdom_n the_o seven_o head_n be_v ″_o seven_o hill_n upon_o which_o the_o woman_n sit_v and_o they_o be_v seven_o king_n ✝_o verse_n 10_o five_o be_v fall_v one_o be_v and_o a_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v &_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v he_o must_v tarry_v a_o short_a time_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o and_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v &_o be_v not_o ″_o the_o same_o also_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o &_o go_v into_o destruction_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v after_o ten_o king_n which_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v kingdom_n but_o do_v shall_v '_o receive_v power_n as_o king_n one_o hour_n after_o the_o beast_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o these_o have_v one_o counsel_n and_o force_v and_o their_o power_n they_o shall_v deliver_v to_o the_o beast_n ✝_o verse_n 14_o these_o shall_v fight_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o lamb_n shall_v overcome_v they_o 16._o because_o *_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n &_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o called_z and_o elect_v and_o faithful_a ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o the_o water_n which_o thou_o saw_a where_o the_o harlot_n sit_v be_v people_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o saw_a in_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v hate_v the_o harlot_n and_o shall_v make_v her_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o shall_v ear_n her_o flesh_n and_o she_o they_o shall_v burn_v with_o fire_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o for_o he_o god_n have_v give_v into_o their_o heart_n to_o do_v that_o which_o please_v he_o that_o they_o give_v their_o kingdom_n to_o the_o beast_n till_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v consummate_v ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o woman_n which_o thou_o saw_a be_v ″_o the_o great_a city_n which_o have_v kingdom_n over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n annotation_n chap._n xvii_o 5._o babylon_n epistle_n in_o the_o end_n of_o s._n peter_n first_o epistle_n where_o the_o apostle_n date_v it_o at_o babylon_n which_o the_o ancient_a writer_n as_o we_o there_o note_v affirm_v to_o be_v mean_v of_o rome_n the_o protestant_n will_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a have_v it_o so_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v drive_v to_o confess_v that_o peter_n ever_o be_v at_o rome_n but_o here_o for_o that_o they_o think_v it_o make_v for_o their_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n the_o seat_n and_o city_n of_o antichrist_n they_o will_v needs_o have_v rome_n to_o be_v this_o babylon_n this_o great_a whore_n and_o this_o purple_a harlot_n for_o such_o fellow_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v lead_v only_o by_o their_o prejudicate_a opinion_n and_o heresy_n to_o which_o they_o draw_v all_o thing_n without_o all_o indifferency_n and_o sincerity_n but_o s._n augustine_n aretas_n and_o other_o writer_n most_o common_o expound_v it_o neither_o of_o babylon_n itself_o a_o city_n of_o chaldaea_n or_o egypt_n church_n not_o of_o rome_n or_o any_o one_o city_n which_o may_v be_v so_o call_v spiritual_o as_o jerusalem_n before_o chap._n 11_o be_v name_v spiritual_a sodom_n and_o egypt_n but_o of_o the_o general_a society_n of_o the_o impious_a &_o of_o those_o that_o prefer_v the_o terrene_a kingdom_n and_o commodity_n of_o the_o world_n before_o god_n &_o eternal_a felicity_n the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o apocalypse_n set_v forth_o in_o s._n ambrose_n name_n write_v thus_o this_o great_a whore_n sometime_o signify_v rome_n special_o which_o at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o apostle_n write_v this_o do_v persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o otherwise_o it_o signify_v the_o whole_a city_n of_o the_o diu●l_n judan_n that_o be_v the_o universal_a corpse_n of_o the_o reprobate_n tertullian_n also_o take_v it_o for_o rome_n thus_o babylon_n say_v he_o in_o s._n john_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o great_a so_o proud_a of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o destroyer_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v plain_o speak_v of_o that_o city_n when_o it_o be_v heathen_a the_o head_n of_o the_o terrene_a dominion_n of_o the_o world_n the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n the_o seat_n of_o nero_n bomitian_n and_o the_o like_a christ_n special_a enemy_n the_o sink_n of_o idolatry_n sin_n and_o false_a worship_n
of_o the_o last_o judgement_n power_n but_o of_o the_o see_v or_o consistory_n of_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n and_o of_o the_o prelate_n themselves_o by_o who_o the_o church_n be_v now_o govern_v as_o the_o judgement_n here_o give_v can_v be_v take_v no_o otherwise_o better_a then_o of_o that_o which_o be_v say_v by_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 18._o whatsoever_o you_o bind_v in_o earth_n 5._o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v with_o out_o 4._o and_o the_o soul_n only_o he_o mean_v say_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v the_o soul_n of_o martyr_n that_o they_o shall_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n during_o those_o thousand_o year_n which_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a be_v in_o heaven_n without_o their_o body_n and_o reign_v with_o christ_n for_o the_o soul_n say_v he_o of_o the_o godly_a depart_v be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v even_o now_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o else_o there_o shall_v be_v keep_v no_o memory_n of_o they_o as_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n in_o the_o communicate_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n neither_o shall_v it_o avail_v to_o hasten_v to_o baptism_n in_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n for_o fear_n of_o end_v our_o life_n without_o it_o nor_o to_o hasten_v to_o be_v reconcile_v if_o we_o fortune_n for_o penence_n or_o of_o ill_a conscience_n to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o same_o body_n and_o why_o be_v all_o these_o thing_n do_v but_o for_o that_o the_o faithful_a depart_v also_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o though_o for_o a_o example_n the_o martyr_n be_v only_o name_v here_o yet_o it_o be_v mean●_n of_o other_o also_o that_o die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n 5._o the_o rest_n live_v not_o time_n the_o rest_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o happy_a number_n aforesaid_a but_o live_v and_o die_v in_o sin_n reign_v not_o with_o christ_n in_o their_o soul_n during_o this_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o be_v dead_a in_o soul_n spiritual_o and_o in_o body_n natural_o till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n s._n august_n ibidem_fw-la 3._o this_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n as_o there_o be_v two_o regeneration_n one_o by_o faith_n which_o be_v now_o in_o baptism_n and_o a_o other_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n when_o at_o the_o late_a day_n the_o body_n shall_v be_v make_v immortal_a and_o incorruptible_a only_o so_o there_o be_v two_o resurrection_n the_o one_o now_o of_o the_o soul_n to_o salvation_n when_o they_o die_v in_o grace_n which_o be_v call_v the_o first_o the_o other_o of_o the_o body_n at_o the_o late_a day_n s._n august_n li●_n 20_o de_fw-fr civi●_n c._n 6._o 6._o they_o shall_v be_v priest_n it_o be_v not_o speak_v say_v s._n augustine_n li._n 20_o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 10_o of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n only_a unpropre_o which_o be_v proper_o now_o in_o the_o church_n call_v priest_n but_o as_o we_o call_v all_o christian_n for_o the_o mystical_a chrism_n or_o ointment_n ●_o so_o all_o priest_n because_o they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o one_o priest_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v a_o holy_a people_n a_o kingly_a priesthood_n which_o word_n be_v notable_a for_o their_o learning_n that_o think_v there_o be_v none_o proper_o call_v priest_n now_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n no_o otherwise_o then_o all_o christian_a man_n and_o woman_n and_o a_o confusion_n to_o they_o that_o therefore_o have_v turn_v the_o name_n priest_n into_o minister_n 7._o satan_n shall_v be_v loose_v augustine_n in_o the_o whole_a 8_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v 20_o book_n de_fw-la civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o s._n augustine_n be_v a_o notable_a commentary_n of_o these_o word_n where_o first_o he_o declare_v that_o neither_o this_o bind_n nor_o lose_v of_o satan_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o seduce_v or_o not_o seduce_v the_o church_n of_o god_n prove_v that_o whether_o he_o be_v bind_v or_o loose_v he_o can_v never_o seduce_v the_o same_o the_o same_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o be_v loose_v even_o as_o since_o it_o be_v institute_v the_o same_o have_v it_o be_v &_o shall_v be_v at_o all_o time_n in_o her_o child_n that_o succeed_v each_o other_o by_o birth_n &_o death_n and_o a_o little_a after_o this_o i_o think_v be_v therefore_o to_o be_v mention_v leave_v any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o during_o the_o little_a time_n wherein_o the_o devil_n shall_v be_v loose_v the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n he_o either_o not_o find_v it_o here_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v le●_n loose_a or_o consume_v it_o when_o be_v shall_v by_o all_o mean_n persecute_v the_o same_o second_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o devil_n to_o be_v bind_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o not_o to_o be_v permit_v by_o god_n to_o exercise_v all_o his_o force_n or_o fraud_n in_o tentation_n as_o to_o be_v loose_v be_v to_o be_v suffer_v by_o god_n for_o a_o small_a time_n that_o be_v for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a to_o practice_v and_o prove_v all_o his_o power_n and_o art_n of_o tentation_n against_o the_o church_n and_o her_o child_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o prevail_v against_o they_o three_o this_o doctor_n show_v by_o what_o great_a mercy_n our_o lord_n have_v tie_v satan_n and_o abridge_v his_o power_n during_o the_o whole_a millenarie_a or_o thousand_o year_n which_o be_v all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n until_o then_o &_o with_o what_o wisdom_n he_o permit_v he_o to_o break_v loose_a that_o little_a time_n of_o three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n antichrist_n towards_o the_o late_a day_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n last_o he_o show_v what_o kind_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v most_o subject_a to_o the_o devil_n seduction_n even_o such_o as_o now_o by_o tentation_n of_o heretic_n go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o shall_v avoid_v it_o by_o all_o which_o we_o may_v confute_v diverse_a false_a exposition_n of_o old_a &_o late_a heretic_n chiliast_n first_o the_o ancient_a sect_n of_o the_o millenaries_n that_o ground_v upon_o these_o thousand_o year_n name_v by_o the_o prophet_n this_o heresy_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o year_n after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n in_o which_o we_o shall_v reign_v with_o christ_n in_o this_o world_n in_o our_o body_n in_o all_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n corporal_a of_o meat_n drink_n and_o such_o like_a which_o they_o call_v the_o first_o resurrection_n of_o which_o heresy_n cerinthus_n be_v the_o author_n epiph._n haer_fw-mi 77._o in_o fine_a hiero._n comment_n in_o c._n 19_o mat._n august_n har_z 8_o ad_fw-la quodvul●_n deum_fw-la eus●bius_n also_o li._n 3_o historia_fw-la c._n 33_o show_v that_o some_o principal_a man_n be_v in_o part_n though_o after_o a_o more_o honest_a manner_n concern_v those_o corporal_a delicacy_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n by_o misconstruction_n of_o these_o word_n of_o s._n john_n hard_o whereby_o we_o learn_v and_o all_o the_o world_n may_v perceive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v hard_a when_o so_o great_a clerk_n do_v err_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o security_n but_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o church_n allow_v of_o the_o late_a heretic_n also_o by_o the_o say_v s._n augustine_n word_n be_v full_o refute_v affirm_v not_o only_a that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v seduce_v in_o that_o great_a persecution_n of_o the_o devil_n lose_v antichrist_n but_o that_o it_o have_v be_v seduce_v even_o a_o great_a piece_n of_o this_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v hold_v that_o the_o very_a true_a church_n may_v err_v or_o fall_v from_o truth_n to_o error_n and_o idolatry_n yea_o which_o be_v more_o blasphemy_n that_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v antichrist_n himself_o and_o the_o very_a church_n under_o he_o the_o whoo●e_n of_o babylon_n and_o that_o this_o antichrist_n which_o the_o scripture_n in_o so_o many_o place_n and_o here_o plain_o by_o s._n augustine_n exposition_n testify_v shall_v reign_v but_o a_o small_a time_n and_o that_o towards_o the_o last_o judgement_n have_v be_v reveal_v long_o sithence_o to_o be_v the_o pope_n himself_o christ_n own_o vicar_n and_o that_o he_o have_v persecute_v the_o saint_n of_o their_o sect_n for_o these_o thousand_o year_n at_o the_o least_o which_o be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o make_v the_o devil_n to_o be_v loose_a and_o antichrist_n to_o reign_v the_o whole_a thousand_o year_n or_o the_o most_o part_n thereof_o that_o be_v almost_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o church_n state_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v against_o this_o and_o other_o scripture_n evident_o appoint_v that_o to_o be_v the_o time_n of_o
my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v annotation_n chap._n iii_o 1._o desert_n 10._o of_o this_o word_n desert_n in_o greek_a eremus_fw-la come_v the_o name_n eremitage_n and_o eremite_n that_o live_v a_o religious_a and_o austere_a life_n in_o desert_n and_o solitatie_a place_n eremites_fw-la by_o the_o example_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n who_o the_o holy_a doctor_n therefore_o call_v the_o prince_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o author_n of_o such_o profession_n s._n chrys_n ho._n 1_o in_o marcum_n &_o ho._n de_fw-fr io._n baptista_n hiero._n ad_fw-la eustoch_n de_fw-fr e●stod_n virg_n isid_n li._n 1._o c._n 15_o de_fw-la diu_fw-la off_o bernardus_n de_fw-mi excel_v io._n baptista_n wherewith_o the_o protestant_n be_v so_o offend_v that_o *_o they_n say_v s._n chrysostom_n speak_v rash_o and_o untrue_o ibid._n and_o no_o marvel_v for_o whereas_o the_o evangelist_n himself_o in_o this_o place_n make_v he_o a_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o penance_n and_o eremitical_a life_n for_o desert_n or_o wilderness_n for_o his_o rough_a and_o rude_a apparel_n for_o abstayn_v from_o all_o delicate_a meat_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n testimony_n also_o of_o he_o mt._n 11_o 8_o luc._n 7_o 33_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o pervert_v all_o with_o this_o strange_a commentary_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v a_o desert_n *_o full_a of_o town_n and_o village_n his_o garment_n be_v *_o chamlet_n his_o meat_n *_o such_o as_o the_o country_n give_v and_o the_o people_n there_o use_v to_o make_v he_o thereby_o but_o a_o common_a man_n like_o to_o the_o rest_n in_o his_o manner_n of_o life_n clean_o against_o scripture_n father_n 〈◊〉_d reason_n 2._o do_v penance_n 17._o so_o be_v the_o latin_a word_n for_o word_n so_o read_v all_o antiquity_n namely_o s._n cyprian_n ep_v 52_o often_o penance_n and_o s._n augustine_n li._n 13_o confess_v c._n 12._o and_o it_o be_v a_o very_a usual_a speech_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n 5._o special_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n 47._o *_o christ_n himself_o and_o *_o the_o apostle_n to_o signify_v perfect_a repentance_n 20._o which_o have_v not_o only_a confession_n and_o amendment_n but_o contrition_n or_o sorrow_n for_o the_o offence_n and_o painful_a satisfaction_n such_o as_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v of_o in_o all_o the_o foresay_a epistle_n but_o the_o adversary_n of_o purpose_n as_o *_o namely_o beza_n protest_v mislike_v that_o interpretation_n siccit_fw-la because_o it_o favour_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n which_o they_o can_v abide_v where_o if_o they_o pretend_v the_o ⸬_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d we_o send_v they_o to_o these_o place_n mat._n 11_o 21._o lu._n 10_o 13._o 1_o cor._n 7_o 9_o where_o it_o must_v needs_o signify_v sorrowful_a 〈◊〉_d payneful_a and_o satisfactory_a repentance_n we_o tell_v they_o also_o that_o *_o s._n basil_n a_o greek_a doctor_n call_v the_o ninivites_fw-la repentance_n with_o fast_v and_o hearecloth_n and_o ash_n by_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o more_o we_o will_v tell_v they_o in_o other_o place_n 8._o confess_v their_o sin_n john_n do_v prepare_v the_o way_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o sacrament_n not_o only_o by_o his_o baptism_n but_o by_o induce_v the_o people_n to_o confession_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o to_o acknowledge_v themselves_o in_o general_a to_o be_v sinner_n but_o also_o to_o utter_v every_o man_n his_o sin_n 9_o fruit_n worthy_a he_o preach_v satisfaction_n by_o do_v worthy_a fruit_n or_o work_n of_o penance_n which_o be_v as_o s._n hierom_n say_v in_o 2._o joel_n fast_v pray_v alm_n and_o the_o like_a 10._o the_o axe_n here_o preacher_n be_v teach_v to_o dehort_v from_o do_v evil_a for_o fear_n of_o hell_n and_o to_o exhort_v to_o do_v good_a in_o hope_n of_o heaven_n which_o kind_n of_o preach_v our_o aduer_n do_v condemn_v 11._o in_o water_n johns_n baptism_n do_v not_o remit_v sin_n christ_n nor_o be_v comparable_a to_o christ_n baptism_n as_o here_o it_o be_v plain_a and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n hiero._n adu_fw-la lucifer_n aug._n de_fw-fr bapt._n cont_n donat._n li._n 5._o c._n 9_o 10._o 11._o yet_o be_v it_o a_o article_n of_o our_o adu_fw-la that_o the_o one_o be_v no_o better_o than_o the_o other_o which_o they_o say_v not_o to_o extol_v johns_n but_o to_o derogate_v from_o christ_n baptism_n so_o far_o that_o they_o make_v it_o of_o no_o more_o valour_n or_o efficacy_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o grace_n and_o justification_n than_o be_v johns_n thereby_o to_o maintain_v their_o manifold_a heresy_n that_o baptism_n take_v not_o away_o sin_n that_o a_o man_n be_v no_o clean_a nor_o just_a by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n then_o before_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o child_n unto_o salvation_n but_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o christian_a parent_n and_o such_o like_a erroneous_a position_n well_o know_v among_o the_o caluinist_n 12._o floor_n this_o floor_n be_v his_o church_n militant_a here_o in_o earth_n wherein_o be_v both_o good_a and_o bad_a here_o signify_v by_o corn_n and_o chaff_n till_o the_o separation_n be_v make_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o heretic_n that_o hold_v the_o church_n to_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o good_a 16._o open_v to_o signify_v that_o heaven_n be_v shut_v in_o the_o old_a law_n till_o christ_n by_o his_o passion_n open_v it_o and_o so_o by_o his_o ascension_n be_v the_o first_o that_o enter_v into_o it_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o heretic_n see_v hebr._n 9_o ●_o and_z 11_o 40._o chap._n four_o christ_n go_v into_o the_o desert_n ●o_o prepare_v himself_o before_o his_o manifestation_n overcome_v the_o devil_n tentation_n 12_o beginning_n in_o galilee_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v he_o shall_v 18_o he_o call_v four_o disciple_n and_o with_o his_o preach_n and_o miracle_n draw_v unto_o he_o innumerable_a follower_n verse_n 1_o than_o *_o jesus_n be_v lead_v of_o the_o spirit_n into_o the_o ″_o desert_n lent_n to_o be_v tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n 12_o ✝_o verse_n 2_o and_o when_o he_o have_v ″_o fast_v forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n 1._o afterward_o he_o be_v hungry_a ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o the_o tempter_n approach_v &_o say_v to_o he_o if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n command_v that_o these_o stone_n be_v make_v bread_n 3_o ✝_o verse_n 4_o who_o answer_v &_o say_v it_o be_v write_v nor_o in_o bread_n alone_o do_v man_n live_v but_o in_o every_o word_n that_o procee_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o then_o the_o devil_n take_v he_o up_o into_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o set_v he_o upon_o the_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o say_v to_o he_o if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n cast_v thyself_o down_o for_o ″_o it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v of_o thou_o 12._o &_o in_o their_o hand_n shall_v they_o hold_v thou_o up_o lest_o perhaps_o thou_o knock_v they_o foot_n against_o a_o stone_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o again_o 16._o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o again_o the_o devil_n take_v he_o up_o into_o a_o very_a high_a mountain_n and_o he_o show_v he_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o ✝_o verse_n 9_o and_o say_v to_o he_o all_o these_o will_v i_o give_v thou_o if_o fall_v down_o thou_o will_v adore_v i_o ✝_o verse_n 10_o then_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o 13._o avaunt_o satan_n for_o it_o be_v write_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v thou_o adore_v &_o ″_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v ✝_o verse_n 11_o then_o the_o devil_n leave_v he_o and_o behold_v angel_n come_v and_o minister_v to_o he_o ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o *_o when_o jesus_n have_v hear_v that_o john_n be_v delivere_a up_o 14_o he_o retire_v into_o galilee_n galil●e_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o leave_v the_o city_n nazareth_n 14._o come_v &_o dwell_v in_o capharnaum_n a_o sea_n town_n in_o the_o border_n of_o zabulon_n &_o nephthali_n ✝_o verse_n 14_o that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v say_v by_o esay_n the_o prophet_n 1._o ✝_o verse_n 15_o land_n of_o zabulon_n &_o land_n of_o nephthali_n the_o way_n of_o the_o sea_n beyond_o jordan_n of_o galilee_n of_o the_o gentile_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o the_o people_n that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n have_v see_v great_a light_n and_o to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o a_o country_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n light_n be_v rise_v to_o they_o ✝_o verse_n 17_o from_o that_o time_n jesus_n begin_v to_o preach_v and_o to_o say_v 15._o ″*_o do_v penance_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o jesus_n *_o walk_v by_o the_o sea_n
but_o by_o christ_n warrant_n and_o authority_n and_o by_o such_o as_o he_o have_v place_v to_o rule_v his_o church_n of_o who_o he_o say_v 16_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n join_v with_o our_o pastor_n in_o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o faithful_a they_o be_v make_v by_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n which_o whosoever_o obi_v not_o 17._o we_o be_v warn_v to_o take_v he_o as_o a_o heathen_a but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n all_o law_n doctrine_n service_n and_o injunction_n of_o heretic_n how_o soever_o pretend_v to_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o scripture_n be_v commandment_n of_o man_n because_o both_o the_o thing_n by_o they_o prescribe_v be_v impious_a and_o the_o author_n have_v neither_o send_v nor_o commission_n from_o god_n 11._o not_o that_o which_o enter_v the_o catholic_n do_v not_o abstain_v from_o certain_a meat_n meat_n for_o that_o they_o esteem_v any_o meat_n unclean_a either_o by_o creation_n or_o by_o judaical_a observation_n but_o they_o abstain_v for_o chastisement_n of_o their_o concupiscence_n aug._n li._n de_fw-fr mor._n ec._n cath._n c._n 33._o 18._o defile_v a_o man_n it_o be_v sin_n only_o which_o proper_o defile_v man_n and_o meat_n of_o themselves_o or_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n do_v not_o defile_v but_o so_o far_o as_o by_o accident_n they_o make_v a_o man_n to_o sin_n abstinence_n as_o the_o disobedience_n of_o god_n commandment_n or_o of_o our_o superior_n who_o forbid_v some_o meat_n for_o certain_a time_n and_o cause_n 3._o be_v a_o sin_n as_o the_o apple_n which_o our_o first_o parent_n do_v eat_v of_o though_o of_o itself_o it_o do_v not_o defile_v they_o yet_o be_v eat_v against_o the_o precept_n it_o do_v defile_v so_o neither_o flesh_n nor_o fish_n of_o itself_o do_v defile_v but_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o church_n precept_n defile_v chap._n xvi_o the_o obstinate_a pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n as_o though_o his_o foresay_a miracle_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n require_v to_o see_v some_o one_o from_o heaven_n 5_o whereupon_o forsake_v they_o he_o warn_v his_o disciple_n to_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o their_o doctrine_n 〈◊〉_d and_o peter_n the_o time_n now_o approach_v for_o he_o to_o go_v into_o lewrie_n to_o his_o passion_n for_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n he_o make_v the_o rock_n of_o his_o church_n geve_v fullness_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n according_o 21_o and_o after_o he_o so_o rebuke_v he_o fordissuade_v his_o cross_n and_o passion_n that_o he_o also_o affirm_v the_o like_a suffering_n in_o every_o one_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n verse_n 1_o and_o there_o come_v to_o he_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n tempt_v 12._o and_o they_o demand_v he_o to_o show_v they_o a_o sign_n from_o heaven_n 54._o ✝_o verse_n 2_o but_o he_o answer_v &_o say_v to_o they_o when_o it_o be_v evening_n you_o say_v it_o will_v be_v faire-weth_a for_o the_o element_n be_v read_v ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o in_o the_o morning_n this_o day_n there_o will_v be_v a_o tempest_n for_o the_o element_n do_v glow_v and_o lower_n the_o face_n therefore_o of_o the_o element_n you_o have_v skill_n to_o discern_v and_o the_o sign_n of_o time_n can_v you_o not_o ✝_o verse_n 4_o the_o *_o naughty_a and_o advouterous_a generation_n seek_v for_o a_o sign_n 39_o and_o there_o shall_v not_o a_o sign_n be_v give_v it_o but_o the_o sign_n of_o jonas_n the_o prophet_n and_o he_o leave_v they_o and_o go_v away_o ✝_o verse_n 5_o and_o *_o when_o his_o disciple_n be_v come_v over_o the_o water_n 14._o they_o forget_v to_o take_v bread_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o who_o say_v to_o they_o 1._o look_v well_o and_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n &_o sadducee_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o but_o they_o think_v within_o themselves_o say_v because_o we_o take_v not_o bread_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o and_o jesus_n know_v it_o say_v why_o do_v you_o think_v within_o yourselves_o o_o you_o of_o little_a faith_n for_o that_o you_o have_v not_o bread_n ✝_o verse_n 9_o do_v you_o not_o yet_o understand_v 34._o neither_o do_v you_o remember_v *_o the_o five_o loaf_n among_o five_o thousand_o man_n and_o how_o many_o basket_n you_o take_v up_o ✝_o verse_n 10_o neither_o the_o *_o seven_o loaf_n among_o four_o thousand_o man_n and_o how_o many_o maunde_v you_o take_v up_o ✝_o verse_n 11_o why_o do_v you_o not_o understand_v that_o i_o say_v not_o of_o bread_n to_o you_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n &_o sadducee_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o then_o they_o understand_v that_o he_o say_v not_o they_o shall_v beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o bread_n but_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o *_o jesus_n come_v into_o the_o quarter_n of_o caesarea_n philippi_n thereof_o and_o he_o ask_v his_o disciple_n 27._o say_v ″_o who_o say_v man_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ✝_o verse_n 14_o but_o ″_o they_o say_v 18._o some_o john_n the_o baptist_n &_o othersome_a elias_n and_o other_o hieremie_n or_o one_o of_o the_o prophet_n ✝_o verse_n 15_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o but_o who_o do_v you_o say_v that_o i_o be_o ✝_o verse_n 16_o simon_n peter_n answer_v &_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o ″_o bless_a be_v thou_o simon_n bar-iona_n because_o flesh_n &_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o to_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o ″_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o 42._o that_o ″_o thou_o be_v *_o rock_n peter_n and_o ″_o upon_o this_o ″_o rock_n will_v i_o ″_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o ″_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o i_o *_o will_v give_v ″_o to_o thou_o the_o ″_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 15._o and_o ″_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v in_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 20_o then_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n that_o they_o shall_v tell_v no_o body_n that_o he_o be_v jesus_n christ_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o from_o that_o time_n jesus_n begin_v to_o show_v his_o disciple_n that_o he_o must_v go_v to_o jerusalem_n &_o suffer_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o ancient_n &_o scribe_n &_o cheefe-prieste_n and_o be_v kill_v and_o the_o three_o day_n rise_v again_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o and_o peter_n take_v he_o unto_o he_o begin_v to_o rebuke_v he_o say_v lord_n be_v it_o far_o from_o thou_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v unto_o thou_o ✝_o verse_n 23_o who_o turn_v say_v to_o peter_n go_v after_o i_o here_o satan_n thou_o be_v a_o scandal_n unto_o i_o because_o thou_o savoure_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o man_n ✝_o verse_n 24_o then_o jesus_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n bishop_n if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o ✝_o verse_n 25_o for_o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o i_o shall_v find_v it_o ✝_o verse_n 26_o for_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o sustain_v the_o damage_n of_o his_o soul_n or_o what_o permutation_n shall_v a_o man_n give_v for_o his_o soul_n ✝_o verse_n 27_o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o will_v he_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o ″_o work_n ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 28_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o 1_o *_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o that_o stand_v here_o 27._o that_o shall_v not_o taste_v death_n till_o they_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o kingdom_n annotation_n chap._n xvi_o 13._o who_o say_v man_n christ_n intend_v here_o to_o take_v order_n for_o the_o sound_n primacy_n regiment_n and_o stability_n of_o his_o church_n after_o his_o decea●e_n and_o to_o name_v the_o person_n to_o who_o he_o mean_v to_o geve_v the_o general_a charge_n thereof_o will_v before_o by_o interrogatory_n draw_v out_o and_o namely_o out_o of_o that_o one_o who_o he_o think_v to_o make_v the_o chief_a the_o profession_n of_o that_o high_a and_o principal_a article_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n be_v a_o necessary_a quality_n and_o condition_n in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v head_n
watch_v he_o whether_o he_o will_v cure_v on_o the_o sabbath_n that_o they_o may_v accuse_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o say_v to_o the_o man_n that_o have_v the_o wither_a hand_n rise_v up_o into_o the_o mid_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o be_v it_o lawful_a on_o the_o sabbath_n to_o do_v well_o or_o il_fw-mi to_o save_v a_o soul_n or_o to_o destroy_v but_o they_o hold_v their_o peace_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o and_o look_v round_o about_o upon_o they_o with_o anger_n be_v sorrowful_a for_o the_o blindenes_n of_o their_o hart_n he_o say_v to_o the_o man_n stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n and_o he_o stretch_v it_o forth_o and_o his_o hand_n be_v restore_v unto_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o the_o pharisee_n go_v forth_o immediate_o make_v a_o consultation_n with_o the_o herodian_o against_o he_o how_o they_o may_v destroy_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 7_o but_o jesus_n with_o his_o disciple_n retire_v to_o the_o sea_n and_o a_o great_a multitude_n from_o galilee_n and_o jewrie_n follow_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 8_o and_o from_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o idumaea_n and_o beyond_o jordan_n and_o they_o about_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n a_o great_a multitude_n hear_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v come_v to_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 9_o and_o he_o speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n that_o a_o boat_n may_v attend_v on_o he_o because_o of_o the_o multitude_n lest_o they_o shall_v throng_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 10_o for_o he_o heal_v many_o so_o that_o there_o press_a in_o upon_o he_o for_o disease_n to_o touch_v he_o as_o many_o as_o have_v hurt_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o and_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n when_o they_o see_v he_o fall_v down_o unto_o he_o and_o they_o cry_v say_v ✝_o verse_n 12_o ″_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o vehement_o charge_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o disclose_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o *_o ascend_a into_o a_o mountain_n 1._o he_o call_v unto_o he_o who_o he_o will_v himself_o 1._o and_o they_o come_v to_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 14_o and_o he_o make_v that_o ″_o twelue_fw-mi shall_v be_v with_o he_o and_o that_o he_o may_v send_v they_o to_o preach_v ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o cure_v infirmity_n and_o to_o cast_v out_o devil_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o give_v to_o simon_n the_o name_n ″_o peter_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o james_n of_o zebedee_n and_o john_n the_o brother_n of_o james_n and_o he_o call_v their_o name_n boanerges_n which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o thunder_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o andrew_n and_o philippe_n and_o bartholomew_n and_o matthew_n and_o thomas_n and_o james_n of_o alphaeus_n and_o thaddaeus_n and_o simon_n cananaeus_fw-la ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o judas_n iscariote_n who_o also_o betray_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 20_o and_o they_o come_v to_o a_o house_n and_o the_o multitude_n resort_v together_o again_o so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o eat_v bread_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o and_o when_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o it_o they_o go_v forth_o to_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o for_o they_o say_v that_o he_o be_v become_v mad_a mad_a ✝_o verse_n 22_o and_o the_o scribe_n which_o be_v come_v down_o from_o jerusalem_n 24._o say_v *_o that_o he_o have_v beelzebub_n and_o that_o in_o the_o prince_n of_o devil_n he_o cast_v out_o devil_n ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o after_o he_o have_v call_v they_o together_o 15._o he_o say_v to_o they_o in_o parable_n how_o can_v satan_n cast_v out_o satan_n ✝_o verse_n 24_o and_o if_o a_o ″_o kingdom_n be_v divide_v against_o itself_o that_o kingdom_n can_v not_o stand_v ✝_o verse_n 25_o and_o if_o a_o house_n be_v divide_v against_o itself_o that_o house_n can_v not_o stand_v ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o if_o satan_n be_v rise_v against_o himself_o he_o be_v divide_v and_o can_v not_o stand_v but_o have_v a_o end_n ✝_o verse_n 27_o no_o body_n can_v rifle_v the_o vessel_n of_o the_o strong_a be_v enter_v into_o his_o house_n unless_o he_o first_o bind_v the_o strong_a and_o then_o shall_v he_o rifle_v his_o house_n ✝_o verse_n 28_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o all_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o the_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o they_o shall_v blaspheme_v ✝_o verse_n 29_o but_o he_o that_o shall_v blaspheme_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v not_o forgiveness_n for_o ever_o but_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o a_o ″_o eternal_a sin_n ✝_o verse_n 30_o because_o they_o say_v he_o have_v a_o unclean_a spirit_n ✝_o verse_n 31_o and_o *_o there_o come_v his_o mother_n and_o brethren_n 46._o and_o stand_v without_o they_o send_v unto_o he_o call_v he_o 19_o ✝_o verse_n 32_o and_o the_o multitude_n sit_v about_o he_o and_o they_o say_v to_o he_o behold_v thy_o mother_n and_o thy_o brethren_n without_o seek_v thou_o ✝_o verse_n 33_o and_o answer_v they_o he_o say_v ″_o who_o be_v my_o mother_n and_o my_o brethren_n ✝_o verse_n 34_o and_o look_v about_o upon_o they_o which_o sit_v round_o about_o he_o he_o say_v behold_v my_o mother_n and_o my_o brethren_n ✝_o verse_n 35_o for_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v the_o will_v of_o god_n he_o be_v my_o brother_n and_o my_o sister_n and_o mother_n annotation_n chap._n iii_o 13._o thou_o be_v the_o son_n the_o confession_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o grateful_a to_o god_n procede_v from_o overy_n person_n the_o devil_n acknowledge_v our_o saviour_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v bid_v hold_v his_o peace_n peter_n confession_n of_o the_o same_o be_v high_o allow_v and_o reward_v aug._n tract_n 10_o in_o ep_n joan._n ser._n 30._o 31._o de_fw-mi verb._n apostoli_fw-la heretic_n therefore_o neither_o heretic_n sermon_n must_v be_v hear_v no_o not_o though_o they_o preach_v the_o truth_n so_o be_v it_o of_o their_o prayer_n and_o service_n which_o be_v never_o so_o good_a in_o itself_o be_v not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n out_o of_o their_o mouth_n yea_o it_o be_v no_o better_a than_o the_o howl_n of_o wolf_n hiero._n in_o 7_o os●●_n 14._o twelve_o mystical_a this_o number_n of_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v mystical_a and_o of_o great_a importance_n as_o appear_v *_o by_o the_o choose_n of_o mathias_n into_o judas_n place_n to_o make_v up_o again_o this_o number_n prefigure_v in_o the_o 12_o patriarch_n 1●_n gen._n 49._o the_o 12_o prince_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n num._n 1._o the_o 12_o fountain_n find_v in_o elim_n exod._n 15._o the_o 12_o precious_a stone_n in_o the_o rational_a of_o aaron_n exod._n 39_o the_o 12_o spy_n send_v by_o moses_n num._n 13._o the_o 12_o stone_n take_v out_o of_o jordan_n whereof_o the_o altar_n be_v make_v josu_n 4._o the_o 12_o love_n of_o proposition_n levit._n 24._o etc._n etc._n anselm_n in_o mt._n c._n 10._o and_o these_o be_v the_o 12_o foundation_n of_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n apoc._n 21._o 16._o peter_n peter_n in_o number_v the_o twelve_o be_v always_o the_o first_o and_o his_o name_n be_v so_o give_v he_o for_o signification_n of_o his_o calling_n to_o be_v the_o *_o rock_n or_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n under_o christ_n preeminence_n as_o here_o also_o the_o name_n boanerges_n be_v give_v to_o other_o two_o apostle_n for_o signification_n 1●_n and_o so_o name_v else_o where_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o in_o the_o new_a 24._o kingdom_n against_o kingdom_n heretic_n as_o this_o be_v true_a in_o all_o kingdom_n and_o commonweal_n where_o civil_a dissension_n reign_v 3._o so_o be_v it_o special_o verify_v in_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n which_o have_v always_o division_n among_o themselves_o as_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n for_o divide_v themselves_o and_o other_o from_o the_o church_n 29._o eternal_a sin_n death_n that_o which_o be_v here_o call_v eternal_a 32._o be_v as_o s._n matthew_n express_v it_o that_o which_o shall_v neither_o be_v remit_v in_o this_o life_n nor_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v where_o we_o learn_v by_o s._n mark_v that_o there_o be_v also_o sin_n not_o eternal_a and_o by_o s._n matthew_n that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o shall_v be_v forgive_v either_o here_o or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 33._o who_o be_v my_o mother_n worldly_a neither_o be_v it_o here_o say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o mother_n as_o some_o upon_o these_o word_n false_o gather_v nor_o ingratitude_n to_o our_o parent_n be_v teach_v we_o by_o this_o answer_n but_o we_o be_v hereby_o admonish_v to_o prefer_v the_o spiritual_a mother_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v the_o church_n catholic_a and_o our_o brethren_n in_o she_o and_o their_o spiritual_a good_a above_o our_o carnal_a parent_n or_o kin_n for_o so_o our_o master_n be_v occupy_v here_o about_o heavenly_a thing_n account_v all_o they_o his_o mother_n and_o brethren_n which_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n sin_n in_o which_o number_n our_o lady_n his_o
and_o he_o speak_v the_o word_n open_o and_o peter_n take_v he_o begin_v to_o rebuke_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 33_o who_o turn_v and_o see_v his_o disciple_n threaten_v peter_n say_v go_v behind_o i_o satan_n because_o thou_o savoure_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n but_o that_o be_v of_o man_n ✝_o verse_n 34_o and_o call_v the_o multitude_n together_o with_o his_o disciple_n he_o say_v to_o they_o if_o any_o man_n will_v follow_v i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o ✝_o verse_n 35_o for_o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n ″_o for_o i_o and_o the_o gospel_n shall_v save_v it_o ✝_o verse_n 36_o for_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o ″_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o suffer_v damage_n of_o his_o soul_n ✝_o verse_n 37_o or_o what_o permutation_n shall_v a_o man_n give_v for_o his_o soul_n ✝_o verse_n 38_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o of_o my_o word_n in_o this_o advouterous_a and_o sinful_a generation_n the_o son_n of_o man_n also_o will_v be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n annotation_n chap._n viii_o 6._o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n he_o serve_v the_o people_n not_o immediate_o himself_o but_o by_o the_o apostle_n ministry_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o must_v receive_v christ_n sacrament_n and_o doctrine_n not_o at_o our_o own_o hand_n but_o of_o his_o priest_n and_o our_o pastor_n 7._o bless_a they_o 〈◊〉_d so_o be_v it_o in_o some_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n agreeable_a to_o our_o latin_a and_o in_o s._n luke_n express_o in_o the_o common_a greek_a text_n 16._o that_o he_o bless_v the_o five_o loaf_n and_o the_o two_o fish_n which_o must_v be_v always_o mark_v against_o the_o heretic_n they_o which_o deny_v this_o blessing_n to_o pertain_v to_o the_o creature_n but_o ●eine_v it_o always_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o god_n for_o thanks_o give_v for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o he_o will_v have_v say_v grace_n but_o once_o for_o that_o whole_a refection_n but_o he_o do_v several_o bless_v both_o the_o bread_n first_o and_o afterward_o the_o fish_n also_o 28._o multiply_v they_o by_o his_o say_a blessing_n as_o *_o he_o do_v mankind_n and_o other_o creature_n in_o the_o begin_n by_o blessing_n they_o and_o so_o work_v effectual_o some_o change_n or_o alteration_n in_o the_o very_a creature_n themselves_o 35._o for_o i_o and_o the_o gospel_n gospel_n by_o the_o gospel_n be_v signify_v not_o only_o the_o four_o evangelist_n but_o all_o scripture_n and_o whatsoever_o christ_n say_v that_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n for_o he_o say_v in_o this_o very_a place_n he_o that_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o my_o word_n the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o etc._n etc._n neither_o his_o own_o word_n only_o 9_o but_o whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o word_n or_o writing_n for_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o for_o defence_n of_o any_o of_o all_o these_o and_o of_o every_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n we_o ought_v to_o die_v and_o this_o be_v to_o lose_v our_o life_n for_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n 36._o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n conscience_n let_v such_o note_n this_o that_o for_o fear_n or_o flattery_n of_o the_o world_n condescend_v to_o obey_v the_o unjust_a law_n of_o man_n touch_v religion_n against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o be_v content_a for_o the_o rest_n of_o a_o few_o day_n of_o this_o life_n and_o for_o save_v their_o temporal_a good_n to_o lose_v their_o soul_n and_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n chap._n ix_o the_o more_o to_o confirm_v they_o he_o give_v they_o in_o his_o transfiguration_n a_o sight_n of_o his_o glory_n whereunto_o suffer_v do_v bring_v 9_o and_o then_o again_o do_v inculcate_v his_o passion_n 14_o a_o devil_n also_o he_o cast_v out_o which_o his_o disciple_n upon_o who_o therefore_o the_o perverse_a scribe_n triumph_v in_o his_o absence_n can_v not_o for_o lack_v of_o fast_v and_o pray_v 30_o be_v yet_o in_o galilee_n he_o reveal_v more_o about_o his_o passion_n 33_o and_o because_o in_o the_o way_n to_o capharnaum_n they_o contend_v for_o the_o primacy_n he_o teach_v they_o that_o humility_n be_v the_o way_n to_o primacy_n before_o god_n 38_o bid_v they_o also_o not_o to_o prohibit_v such_o as_o be_v not_o against_o they_o nor_o to_o give_v scandal_n to_o any_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o faithful_a to_o avoid_v they_o by_o who_o they_o may_v be_v scandalize_v and_o fall_v be_v they_o never_o so_o near_o unto_o they_o verse_n 1_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o 1_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o that_o stand_v here_o 27_o which_o shall_v not_o taste_v of_o death_n until_o they_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n come_v in_o power_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o matthew_n and_o after_o six_o day_n jesus_n take_v peter_n and_o james_n and_o john_n and_o bring_v they_o alone_o into_o a_o high_a mountain_n apart_o and_o be_v transfigure_v before_o they_o ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o his_o garment_n be_v make_v glister_v and_o white_a exceed_o as_o snow_v the_o like_a whereof_o a_o full_a can_v make_v white_a upon_o the_o earth_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o there_o appear_v to_o they_o ordinary_o elias_n with_o moses_n and_o they_o be_v talk_v with_o jesus_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o and_o peter_n answer_v say_v to_o jesus_n rabbi_n it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v here_o and_o let_v we_o make_v three_o tabernacle_n one_o for_o thou_o and_o one_o for_o moses_n and_o one_o for_o elias_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o for_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v for_o they_o be_v fright_v with_o fear_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o and_o there_o be_v a_o cloud_n overshadow_v they_o and_o a_o voice_n come_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n say_v this_o be_v my_o son_n most_o dear_a hear_v you_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 8_o and_o immediate_o look_v about_o they_o see_v no_o man_n any_o more_o but_o jesus_n only_o with_o they_o ✝_o verse_n 9_o and_o as_o they_o descend_v from_o the_o mountain_n he_o command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o tell_v any_o man_n what_o thing_n they_o have_v see_v but_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a ✝_o verse_n 10_o and_o they_o keep_v in_o the_o word_n with_o themselves_o question_v together_o what_o that_o shall_v be_v when_o he_o shall_v be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a ✝_o verse_n 11_o and_o they_o ask_v he_o say_v what_o say_v the_o pharisee_n then_o and_o the_o scribe_n 5_o that_o *_o elias_n must_v come_v first_o ✝_o verse_n 12_o who_o answering_n say_v to_o they_o elias_n when_o he_o come_v first_o shall_v restore_v all_o thing_n and_o as_o how_o '_o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v many_o thing_n and_o be_v contemn_v ✝_o verse_n 13_o but_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o ″_o elias_n also_o be_v come_v and_o they_o have_v do_v to_o he_o whatsoever_o they_o will_v as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 14_o and_o *_o come_n to_o his_o disciple_n 14._o he_o see_v a_o great_a multitude_n about_o they_o and_o the_o scribe_n question_v with_o they_o ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o forth_o with_o all_o the_o people_n see_v jesus_n 37_o be_v astonish_v and_o much_o afraid_a and_o run_v to_o he_o salute_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o ask_v they_o september_n what_o do_v you_o question_v of_o among_o you_o ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o one_o of_o the_o multitude_n answer_v say_v master_n i_o have_v bring_v my_o son_n to_o thou_o have_v a_o dumb_a spirit_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o who_o wheresoever_o he_o take_v he_o dash_v he_o and_o he_o foam_v and_o gnash_v with_o the_o tooth_n and_o wither_v and_o i_o speak_v to_o thy_o disciple_n to_o cast_v he_o out_o and_o they_o can_v not_o ✝_o verse_n 19_o who_o answering_a they_o say_v o_o incredulous_a generation_n how_o long_o shall_v i_o be_v with_o you_o how_o long_o shall_v i_o suffer_v you_o bring_v he_o unto_o i_o ✝_o verse_n 20_o and_o they_o bring_v he_o and_o when_o he_o have_v see_v he_o immediate_o the_o spirit_n trouble_v he_o and_o be_v throw_v upon_o the_o ground_n he_o tumble_v foam_v ✝_o verse_n 21_o and_o he_o ask_v his_o father_n how_o long_a time_n be_v it_o since_o this_o have_v chance_v unto_o he_o but_o he_o say_v from_o his_o infancy_n ✝_o verse_n 22_o and_o often_o time_n have_v he_o cast_v he_o into_o fire_n and_o into_o water_n to_o destroy_v he_o but_o if_o thou_o can_v any_o thing_n help_v we_o have_v compassion_n
flesh_n therefore_o now_o they_o be_v not_o two_o but_o one_o flesh_n ✝_o verse_n 9_o that_o therefore_o which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o break_v let_v not_o man_n separate_v ✝_o verse_n 10_o and_o *_o in_o the_o house_n again_o his_o disciple_n ask_v he_o of_o the_o same_o thing_n 9_o ✝_o verse_n 11_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o 32_o whosoever_o dimiss_v his_o wife_n and_o ″_o marry_v a_o other_o 18._o commit_v advoutrie_n upon_o she_o ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o if_o the_o wife_n dimisse_fw-la her_o husband_n and_o marry_v a_o other_o 11._o she_o commit_v advoutrie_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o *_o they_o offer_v to_o he_o young_a child_n 13._o that_o he_o may_v touch_v they_o and_o the_o disciple_n threaten_v those_o that_o offer_v they_o 15._o ✝_o verse_n 14_o who_o when_o jesus_n see_v he_o take_v it_o il_fw-mi and_o say_v to_o they_o suffer_v the_o little_a child_n to_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o prohibit_v they_o not_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v for_o such_o ✝_o verse_n 15_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o whosoever_o receive_v not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o a_o little_a child_n shall_v not_o enter_v into_o it_o ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o embrace_v they_o and_o impose_v hand_n upon_o they_o he_o blessing_n bless_v they_o ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o when_o he_o be_v go_v forth_o in_o the_o way_n a_o certain_a man_n run_v forth_o and_o kneel_v before_o he_o ask_v he_o *_o good_a master_n 16._o what_o shall_v i_o do_v that_o i_o may_v receive_v life_n everlasting_a ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o why_o call_v thou_o i_o good_a ″_o none_o be_v good_a but_o one_o 18._o god_n ✝_o verse_n 19_o thou_o know_a the_o everlasting_a commandment_n 13._o *_o commit_v not_o advoutrie_n kill_v not_o steal_v not_o bear_v not_o false_a witness_n do_v no_o fraud_n honour_v thy_o father_n and_o mother_n ✝_o verse_n 20_o but_o he_o answer_v say_v to_o he_o master_n all_o these_o thing_n i_o have_v observe_v from_o my_o youth_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o and_o jesus_n behold_v he_o love_v he_o and_o say_v to_o he_o one_o thing_n be_v want_v unto_o thou_o follow_v go_v sell_v whatsoever_o thou_o have_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o thou_o shall_v have_v treasure_n in_o heaven_n and_o come_v follow_v i_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o who_o be_v strike_v sad_a at_o the_o word_n go_v away_o sorrowful_a for_o he_o have_v many_o possession_n ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o jesus_n look_v about_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n how_o hardly_o shall_v they_o that_o have_v money_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 24_o and_o the_o disciple_n be_v astonish_v at_o his_o word_n but_o jesus_n again_o answer_v say_v to_o they_o child_n how_o hard_o be_v it_o for_o they_o that_o trust_v in_o money_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 25_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o nedels_n eye_n then_o for_o ″_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 26_o who_o maruel_v more_o say_v to_o themselves_o and_o who_o can_v be_v save_v ✝_o verse_n 27_o and_o jesus_n behold_v they_o say_v with_o man_n it_o be_v impossibile_fw-it but_o not_o with_o god_n for_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 28_o and_o peter_n begin_v to_o say_v unto_o he_o behold_v we_o have_v leave_v all_o thing_n and_o have_v follow_v thou_o ✝_o verse_n 29_o jesus_n answer_v say_v religion_n amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o there_o be_v no_o man_n which_o have_v leave_v house_n or_o brethren_n or_o sister_n or_o father_n or_o mother_n or_o child_n or_o land_n for_o i_o and_o for_o the_o gospel_n ✝_o verse_n 30_o that_o shall_v not_o receive_v ″_o a_o hundred_o time_n so_o much_o now_o in_o this_o time_n house_n and_o brethren_n and_o sister_n and_o mother_n and_o child_n and_o land_n with_o persecution_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v life_n everlasting_a 30._o ✝_o verse_n 31_o but_o *_o many_o that_o be_v first_o shall_v be_v last_o and_o the_o last_o first_o ✝_o verse_n 32_o and_o they_o be_v in_o the_o way_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n 30._o and_o jesus_n go_v before_o they_o and_o they_o be_v astonish_v and_o follow_a be_v afraid_a 17._o and_o *_o take_n again_o the_o twelue_fw-mi he_o begin_v to_o tell_v they_o the_o thing_n that_o shall_v befall_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 33_o that_o behold_v we_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n 31._o and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v betray_v to_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o to_o the_o scribe_n and_o ancient_n and_o they_o shall_v condemn_v he_o to_o death_n and_o shall_v deliver_v he_o to_o the_o gentile_n ✝_o verse_n 34_o and_o they_o shall_v mock_v he_o and_o spit_v on_o he_o and_o scourge_v he_o and_o kill_v he_o and_o the_o three_o day_n he_o shall_v rise_v again_o ✝_o verse_n 35_o and_o *_o there_o come_v to_o he_o james_n and_o john_n the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n ●0_n say_v master_n we_o will_v that_o what_o thing_n soever_o we_o shall_v ask_v thou_o do_v it_o to_o us._n ✝_o verse_n 36_o but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o what_o will_v you_o that_o i_o do_v to_o you_o ✝_o verse_n 37_o and_o they_o say_v grant_v to_o we_o that_o we_o may_v sit_v one_o on_o thy_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o other_o on_o thy_o left_a hand_n in_o thy_o glory_n ✝_o verse_n 38_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o you_o wot_v not_o what_o you_o ask_v can_v you_o drink_v the_o cup_n that_o i_o drink_v or_o be_v baptize_v with_o the_o baptism_n wherewith_o i_o be_o baptize_v ✝_o verse_n 39_o but_o they_o say_v to_o he_o we_o can_v and_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o the_o cup_n in_o deed_n which_o i_o drink_v you_o shall_v drink_v and_o with_o the_o baptism_n wherewith_o i_o be_o baptize_v shall_v you_o be_v baptize_v ✝_o verse_n 40_o but_o to_o sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n or_o on_o my_o left_a be_v not_o i_o to_o give_v unto_o you_o but_o to_o who_o it_o be_v prepare_v ✝_o verse_n 41_o and_o the_o ten_o hearing_n begin_v to_o be_v displease_v at_o james_n and_o john_n ✝_o verse_n 42_o and_o jesus_n call_v they_o 25._o say_v to_o they_o *_o you_o know_v that_o they_o which_o seem_v to_o rule_v over_o the_o gentile_n over-rule_v they_o and_o their_o prince_n have_v power_n over_o they_o 25._o ✝_o verse_n 43_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o you_o but_o whosoever_o will_v be_v great_a shall_v be_v your_o minister_n ✝_o verse_n 44_o and_o whosoever_o will_v be_v first_o among_o you_o shall_v be_v the_o servant_n of_o al._n ✝_o verse_n 45_o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n also_o be_v not_o come_v to_o be_v minister_v unto_o but_o to_o minister_v and_o to_o give_v his_o life_n a_o redempption_n for_o many_o ✝_o verse_n 46_o and_o *_o they_o come_v to_o jericho_n 29._o and_o when_o he_o depart_v from_o jericho_n and_o his_o disciple_n and_o a_o very_a great_a multitude_n the_o son_n of_o timaeus_n 35._o bartimaeus_a the_o blind_a man_n sit_v by_o the_o way_n side_n beg_v ✝_o verse_n 47_o who_o when_o he_o have_v hear_v that_o it_o be_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n he_o begin_v to_o cry_v and_o to_o say_v jesus_n son_n of_o david_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o ✝_o verse_n 48_o and_o many_o threaten_v he_o to_o hold_v his_o peace_n but_o he_o cry_v much_o more_o son_n of_o david_n verse_n 49_o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o and_o jesus_n stand_v still_o command_v he_o to_o be_v call_v and_o they_o call_v the_o blind_a man_n say_v to_o he_o be_v of_o better_a comfort_n arise_v he_o call_v thou_o ✝_o verse_n 50_o who_o cast_v of_o his_o garment_n leap_v up_o and_o come_v to_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 51_o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o what_o will_v thou_o that_o i_o do_v unto_o thou_o and_o the_o blind_a man_n say_v to_o he_o rabbôni_n that_o i_o may_v see_v ✝_o verse_n 52_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o go_v thy_o way_n thy_o faith_n have_v make_v the_o safe_a and_o forthwith_o he_o see_v and_o follow_v he_o in_o the_o way_n annotation_n chap._n x._o 4._o permit_v evil_a some_o thing_n be_v permit_v though_o not_o approve_v or_o allow_v to_o avoid_v great_a inconvenience_n no_o man_n may_v do_v evil_a for_o any_o cause_n but_o he_o may_v permit_v other_o man_n evil_n for_o diverse_a cause_n 19_o as_o god_n himself_o do_v who_o can_v do_v no_o evil_a so_o do_v the_o prince_n and_o commonwealth_n permit_v lesser_a evil_n to_o eschew_v great_a and_o so_o may_v the_o holy_a church_n much_o more_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v she_o do_v be_v place_v among_o much_o chaff_n and_o much_o cockle_n tolerate_v many_o thing_n and_o yet_o whatsoever_o be_v against_o faith_n and_o good_a life_n she_o neither_o approve_v nor_o
they_o be_v his_o cousin_n 8._o either_o the_o son_n of_o joseph_n brother_n or_o as_o the_o more_o receive_a opinion_n be_v the_o son_n of_o our_o lady_n sister_n call_v marie_n of_o james_n which_o jame_v therefore_o be_v also_o call_v the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n 55._o her_o spirit_n return_v this_o return_v of_o the_o soul_n again_o into_o the_o body_n of_o they_o who_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n raise_v from_o death_n special_o lazarus_n who_o have_v be_v dead_a four_o day_n do_v evident_o prove_v a_o three_o place_n against_o our_o adversary_n life_n that_o say_v every_o one_o go_v straight_o to_o heaven_n or_o to_o hel._n ●or_a it_o can_v not_o be_v think_v that_o they_o be_v call_v from_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o from_o some_o three_o place_n chap._n ix_o his_o twelve_o also_o now_o preach_v every_o where_n and_o work_a miracle_n 6_o herod_n and_o all_o do_v wonder_n much_o 10_o after_o which_o he_o take_v they_o and_o go_v into_o the_o wilderness_n where_o he_o cure_v and_o teach_v feed_v 5000_o with_o five_o leaf_n 18_o peter_n confess_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n 21_o he_o on_o the_o other_o side_n foretell_v his_o passion_n and_o that_o all_o must_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n follow_v he_o therein_o ●7_n whereunto_o to_o encourage_v we_o the_o more_o 27_o he_o give_v in_o his_o transfiguration_n a_o sight_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o suffering_n ●7_n the_o next_o day_n he_o cast_v out_o a_o devil_n which_o his_o disciple_n can_v not_o 43_o who_o amidde_v these_o wonder_v he_o fore_o warn_v again_o of_o his_o scandalous_a passion_n 49_o and_o to_o cure_v their_o ambition_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o most_o humble_a he_o esteem_v most_o 49_o bid_v they_o also_o not_o to_o prohibit_v any_o that_o be_v not_o against_o they_o 51_o yea_o and_o towards_o such_o as_o be_v against_o they_o schismatical_o to_o show_v mildness_n for_o all_o that_o 57_o of_o follow_v he_o three_o example_n verse_n 1_o and_o call_v together_o the_o twelue_fw-mi apostle_n week_n he_o give_v they_o sin_n virtue_n and_o power_n over_o all_o devil_n 1_o and_o to_o cure_v malady_n 8._o ✝_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o send_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o to_o heal_v the_o sick_a ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o take_v nothing_o for_o the_o way_n neither_o rod_n nor_o skip_v nor_o bread_n nor_o money_n neither_o have_v two_o coat_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o into_o whatsoever_o house_n you_o enter_v tarry_v there_o and_o thence_o do_v not_o depart_v ✝_o and_n whosoever_o shall_v not_o receive_v you_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o that_o city_n shake_v of_o the_o dust_n also_o of_o your_o foot_n sustenance_n for_o a_o testimony_n upon_o they_o ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o go_v forth_o they_o go_v a_o circuit_n from_o town_n to_o town_n evangelize_a and_o cure_v every_o where_o ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 7_o and_o *_o herod_n the_o tetrarch_n hear_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o he_o 1_o and_o he_o stagger_v because_o it_o be_v say_v of_o some_o 14._o that_o john_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a ✝_o verse_n 8_o but_o of_o other_o some_o that_o elias_n have_v appear_v and_o of_o other_o that_o a_o prophet_n one_o of_o the_o old_a one_o be_v rise_v ✝_o verse_n 9_o and_o herod_n say_v john_n i_o have_v behead_v but_o who_o be_v this_o of_o who_o i_o hear_v such_o thing_n and_o he_o seek_v for_o to_o see_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 10_o and_o *_o the_o apostle_n be_v return_v 13._o report_v to_o he_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v and_o take_v they_o he_o retire_v apart_o into_o a_o desert_n place_n 31._o which_o belong_v to_o beth-saida_a ✝_o verse_n 11_o which_o the_o multitude_n understanding_n 5._o follow_v he_o &_o he_o receive_v they_o and_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o have_v need_n of_o cure_n he_o heal_v ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o the_o day_n begin_v to_o draw_v towards_o a_o end_n and_o the_o twelue_fw-mi come_n near_o say_v to_o he_o dimisse_fw-la the_o multitude_n that_o go_v into_o town_n and_o village_n here_o about_o they_o may_v have_v lodging_n and_o find_v meat_n because_o here_o we_o be_v in_o a_o desert_n place_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o give_v you_o they_o to_o eat_v but_o they_o say_v we_o have_v no_o more_o but_o five_o loaf_n and_o two_o fish_n unless_o perhaps_o we_o shall_v go_v and_o high_a meat_n for_o all_o this_o multitude_n ✝_o verse_n 14_o and_o there_o be_v man_n almost_o five_o thousand_o and_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n make_v they_o sit_v down_o by_o company_n fifty_o and_o fifty_o ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o so_o they_o do_v and_o they_o make_v all_o sit_v down_o ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o take_v the_o five_o loaf_n and_o the_o two_o fish_n he_o look_v up_o unto_o heaven_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 7._o bless_v they_o and_o he_o break_v and_o distribute_v to_o his_o disciple_n for_o to_o set_v before_o the_o multitude_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o whithersoever_o they_o do_v all_o eat_v and_o have_v their_o fill_n and_o there_o be_v take_v up_o that_o which_o remain_v to_o they_o twelue_fw-mi basket_n of_o fragment_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o *_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v 13._o when_o he_o be_v alone_o pray_v his_o disciple_n also_o be_v with_o he_o and_o he_o ask_v they_o say_v who_o do_v the_o multitude_n say_v that_o i_o be_o 27._o ✝_o verse_n 19_o but_o they_o answer_v and_o say_v john_n the_o baptist_n and_o some_o elias_n but_o some_o that_o one_o of_o the_o prophet_n before_o time_n be_v rise_v ✝_o verse_n 20_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o but_o who_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o simon_n peter_n answer_v say_v the_o christ_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o but_o he_o rebuke_v they_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v tell_v this_o to_o no_o man_n ✝_o verse_n 22_o saying_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n must_v suffer_v many_o thing_n and_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o ancient_n and_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n and_o be_v kill_v and_o the_o three_o day_n rise_v again_o ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o he_o say_v to_o all_o if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n daily_o and_o follow_v i_o ✝_o verse_n 24_o for_o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v save_v it_o ✝_o verse_n 25_o for_o what_o profit_n have_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v himself_o and_o cast_v away_o himself_o ✝_o verse_n 26_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o of_o my_o word_n he_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o father_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a angel_n ✝_o verse_n 27_o and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o assure_o there_o be_v some_o stand_n here_o that_o shall_v not_o raze_v death_n ″_o till_o they_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 28_o *_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o these_o word_n almost_o eight_o day_n transfiguration_n and_o he_o take_v peter_n and_o james_n and_o john_n 1_o and_o go_v into_o a_o mountain_n to_o pray_v 1._o ✝_o verse_n 29_o and_o while_o he_o pray_v the_o shape_n of_o his_o countenance_n be_v alter_v and_o his_o raiment_n white_a and_o glister_a ✝_o verse_n 30_o and_o behold_v two_o man_n talk_v with_o he_o and_o they_o be_v moses_n and_o elias_n ✝_o verse_n 31_o appear_v in_o majesty_n and_o they_o tell_v his_o decease_n that_o he_o shall_v accomplish_v in_o jerusalem_n ✝_o verse_n 32_o but_o peter_n and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o be_v heavy_a with_o sleep_n and_o awake_v they_o see_v his_o majesty_n and_o the_o two_o man_n that_o stand_v with_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 33_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o they_o depart_v from_o he_o peter_n say_v to_o jesus_n master_n it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v here_o and_o let_v we_o make_v three_o tabernacle_n one_o for_o thou_o and_o one_o for_o moses_n and_o one_o for_o elias_n not_o know_v what_o he_o say_v ✝_o verse_n 34_o and_o as_o he_o speak_v these_o thing_n there_o come_v a_o cloud_n and_o overshadow_v they_o and_o they_o fear_v 17._o when_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o cloud_n ✝_o verse_n 35_o *_o and_o a_o voice_n be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n hear_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 36_o and_o while_o the_o voice_n be_v make_v jesus_n be_v find_v alone_o and_o they_o hold_v their_o peace_n and_o tell_v no_o man_n in_o those_o day_n any_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v see_v ✝_o verse_n 37_o
say_v also_o to_o the_o multitude_n 2_o when_o you_o see_v a_o cloud_n rise_v from_o the_o west_n by_o and_o by_o you_o say_v a_o shower_n come_v and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v ✝_o verse_n 55_o and_o when_o the_o south_n wind_n blow_v you_o say_v that_o there_o will_v be_v heat_n and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v ✝_o verse_n 56_o hypocrite_n the_o face_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o earth_n you_o have_v skill_n to_o discern_v but_o this_o time_n how_o do_v you_o not_o discern_v ✝_o verse_n 57_o and_o why_o of_o yourselves_o also_o judge_v you_o not_o that_o which_o be_v just_a ✝_o verse_n 58_o *_o and_o 25._o when_o thou_o go_v with_o thy_o adversary_n to_o the_o prince_n 25_o in_o the_o way_n endeavour_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o he_o lest_o perhaps_o he_o draw_v thou_o to_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o judge_n deliver_v thou_o to_o the_o exactor_n and_o the_o exactor_n cast_v thou_o into_o prison_n ✝_o verse_n 59_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o thou_o shall_v not_o go_v out_o thence_o until_o thou_o pay_v the_o very_a last_o mite_n annotation_n chap._n xii_o ●_o every_o one_o that_o confess_v faith_n a_o catholic_a man_n be_v bind_v to_o confess_v his_o faith_n be_v call_v to_o account_n or_o examine_v by_o jew_n heathen_a or_o heretic_n concern_v the_o same_o neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o keep_v christ_n in_o his_o hart_n but_o he_o must_v also_o acknowledge_v he_o in_o his_o word_n and_o deed_n and_o to_o deny_v christ_n or_o any_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n for_o shame_n or_o fear_v of_o any_o worldly_a creature_n have_v no_o less_o punishment_n then_o to_o be_v deny_v refuse_v and_o forsake_v by_o christ_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n before_o all_o his_o angel_n which_o be_v a_o other_o manner_n of_o presence_n and_o consistory_n than_o any_o court_n or_o session_n that_o man_n can_v be_v call_v to_o for_o their_o faith_n in_o this_o world_n 11._o be_v not_o careful_a faith_n that_o the_o poor_a unclearned_a catholic_a shall_v not_o be_v discourage_v or_o make_v his_o excuse_n that_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a man_n not_o able_a to_o answer_n cunning_a heretic_n nor_o to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o belief_n and_o therefore_o must_v suffer_v or_o say_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o come_v before_o they_o our_o master_n give_v they_o comfort_n promise_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v ever_o put_v into_o their_o heart_n at_o time_n of_o their_o appearance_n that_o which_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o purpose_n not_o that_o every_o one_o which_o be_v convent_v before_o the_o adversary_n of_o faith_n shall_v always_o be_v indeed_o with_o extraordinary_a knowledge_n to_o dispute_v and_o confute_v as_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v but_o that_o god_n will_v ever_o give_v to_o the_o simple_a that_o trust_v in_o he_o sufficient_a courage_n and_o word_n to_o confess_v his_o belief_n for_o such_o a_o one_o call_v before_o the_o commissioner_n say_v enough_o and_o defend_v himself_o sufficient_o when_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a man_n &_o that_o he_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o faith_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n throughout_o all_o christian_a country_n have_v and_o do_v teach_v and_o that_o this_o church_n can_v give_v they_o a_o reason_n of_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o demand_v of_o he_o etc._n etc._n 14._o who_o have_v appoint_v christ_n refuse_v to_o meddle_v in_o this_o temporal_a matter_n partly_o because_o the_o demand_v procee_v of_o covetousness_n and_o ill_a intention_n affair_n partly_o to_o give_v a_o example_n to_o clergy_n man_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v withdraw_v by_o secular_a affair_n and_o controversy_n from_o their_o principal_a function_n of_o pray_v preach_v and_o spiritual_a regiment_n but_o not_o whole_o to_o forbid_v they_o all_o action_n pertain_v to_o worldly_a business_n special_o where_o and_o when_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o increase_n of_o religion_n 19_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o spiritual_a benefit_n of_o the_o party_n do_v require_v in_o which_o case_n s._n augustin_n as_o possidonius_fw-la write_v be_v occupy_v often_o whole_a day_n in_o end_v worldly_a controversy_n 29._o and_o so_o he_o write_v of_o himself_o also_o not_o doubt_v but_o to_o have_v reward_n therefore_o in_o heaven_n 21._o scotfree_a to_o god_n ward_n work_n he_o be_v scotfree_a towards_o god_n that_o by_o his_o good_n bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a have_v store_n of_o merit_n and_o many_o almesmens_n prayer_n procure_v mercy_n for_o he_o at_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n and_o judgement_n which_o be_v here_o therefore_o call_v treasure_n lay_v up_o in_o heaven_n where_o the_o barn_n be_v large_a enough_o the_o necessity_n of_o which_o alm_n be_v by_o christ_n himself_o here_o show_v to_o be_v so_o great_a and_o so_o acceptable_a to_o god_n that_o rather_o than_o they_o shall_v lack_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o they_o shall_v sell_v all_o they_o have_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a 34._o where_o your_o treasure_n be_v alm_n if_o the_o scotfree_a man_n withdraw_v by_o his_o worldly_a treasure_n can_v not_o set_v his_o hart_n upon_o heaven_n let_v he_o send_v his_o money_n thither_o before_o he_o by_o give_v it_o in_o alm_n upon_o such_o as_o will_v pray_v for_o he_o and_o his_o hart_n will_v solow_v his_o purse_n thither_o chap._n xiii_o he_o threaten_v the_o jew_n to_o be_v forsake_v unless_o they_o do_v penance_n 10_o and_o confound_v they_o for_o malign_v he_o for_o his_o miraculous_a good_a do_v on_o the_o sabbath_n 18_o but_o his_o kingdom_n the_o church_n as_o contemptible_a as_o it_o seem_v to_o they_o now_o in_o the_o beginning_n shall_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n 20_o and_o convert_v all_o 23_o and_o what_o a_o hartsore_a it_o shall_v be_v to_o they_o at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o see_v themselves_o exclude_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o the_o gentile_n admit_v in_o their_o place_n 31_o foretell_v that_o it_o be_v not_o galilee_n that_o he_o fear_v but_o that_o obstinate_a and_o reprobate_a jerusalem_n will_v needs_o murder_v he_o as_o also_o his_o messenger_n afore_o and_o after_o he_o verse_n 1_o and_o there_o be_v certain_a present_a at_o that_o very_a time_n tell_v he_o of_o the_o galilaean_n who_o blood_n pilate_n mingle_v with_o their_o sacrifice_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o answer_v say_v to_o they_o think_v you_o that_o ″_o these_o galilean_n be_v sinner_n more_o than_o all_o the_o galilaean_n that_o they_o suffer_v such_o thing_n ✝_o verse_n 3_o no_o i_o say_v to_o you_o but_o unless_o you_o 21._o habueritis_fw-la have_v penance_n you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v ✝_o verse_n 4_o as_o those_o eightene_n upon_o who_o the_o tower_n fall_v in_o silóe_n and_o slay_v they_o think_v you_o that_o they_o also_o be_v debtor_n above_o all_o the_o man_n that_o dwell_n in_o jerusalem_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o no_o i_o say_v to_o you_o but_o if_o you_o have_v not_o penance_n you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o he_o say_v this_o similitude_n sept._n a_o certain_a man_n have_v work_n a_o figtree_n plant_v in_o his_o vineyard_n and_o he_o come_v seek_v for_o fruit_n on_o it_o and_o find_v not_o ✝_o verse_n 7_o and_o he_o say_v to_o the_o dresser_n of_o the_o vineyard_n loe_o it_o be_v three_o year_n since_o i_o come_v seek_v for_o fruit_n upon_o this_o figtree_n and_o i_o find_v not_o cut_v it_o down_o therefore_o whereto_o do_v it_o also_o occupy_v the_o ground_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o but_o he_o answer_v say_v to_o he_o lord_n let_v it_o alone_o this_o year_n also_o until_o i_o dig_v about_o it_o and_o dung_n it_o ✝_o verse_n 9_o and_o if_o happy_o it_o yield_v fruit_n but_o if_o not_o hereafter_o thou_o shall_v cut_v it_o down_o ✝_o verse_n 10_o and_o he_o be_v teach_v in_o their_o synagogue_n on_o the_o sabbath_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o and_o behold_v a_o woman_n that_o have_v a_o spirit_n of_o infirmity_n eightene_v year_n and_o she_o be_v crooked_a neither_o can_v she_o look_v upward_a at_o al._n ✝_o verse_n 12_o who_o when_o jesus_n see_v he_o call_v she_o unto_o he_o and_o say_v to_o she_o woman_n thou_o be_v deliver_v from_o thy_o infirmity_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o he_o impose_v hand_n upon_o she_o and_o forthwith_o she_o be_v make_v straight_o and_o glorify_a god_n ✝_o verse_n 14_o and_o the_o archsynagogue_n answer_v because_o he_o have_v indignation_n that_o jesus_n have_v cure_v on_o the_o sabbath_n say_v to_o the_o multitude_n six_o day_n there_o be_v wherein_o you_o ought_v to_o work_v in_o they_o therefore_o come_v and_o be_v cure_v and_o not_o in_o the_o sabbath_n day_n ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o our_o lord_n answer_v to_o he_o say_v hypocrite_n do_v not_o every_o one_o
hell_n go_v thither_o special_o and_o deliver_v the_o say_v father_n out_o of_o that_o mansion_n iren._n li._n 4_o c._n ●9_n euseb_n demonst_a euang._n li._n 10._o c._n 8_o sub_fw-la finen_n nazian_n orat_fw-la 2_o de_fw-fr pasch_fw-mi chrysost_n to_o 5_o in_o demonst_a quod_fw-la christus_fw-la sit_fw-la deus_fw-la paulo_fw-la post_fw-la initium_fw-la epipha_n in_o heres_fw-la 46_o tatiani_n ambro._n de_fw-fr mist_n pasch_fw-mi c._n 4._o hiero._n in_o 9_o zacharia_n august_n ep_v 99_o &_o li._n 20_o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 15._o paulinus_n in_o panegyrico_fw-la celst_n cyrillus_n in_o lo._n li._n 12_o c._n 36_o ad_fw-la illud_fw-la inclinato_fw-la capite_fw-la gregor_n li._n 6_o ep_n 179._o which_o truth_n and_o place_n though_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n confess_v and_o prove_v by_o this_o and_o other_o scripture_n yet_o the_o adversary_n deny_v it_o as_o they_o do_v purgatory_n most_o impudent_o 26_o a_o great_a chaos_n purgatory_n a_o great_a distance_n betwixt_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o the_o inferior_a hell_n some_o judge_n purgatory_n to_o be_v place_v there_o from_o whence_o no_o doubt_n christ_n also_o deliver_v some_o at_o his_o descend_v to_o hell_n 99_o for_o these_o in_o abraham_n bosom_n be_v not_o in_o pain_n and_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a that_o he_o take_v some_o out_o of_o the_o place_n of_o punishment_n and_o yet_o none_o out_o of_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a what_o other_o place_n then_o can_v that_o be_v but_o purgatory_n 28._o lest_o they_o also_o if_o the_o damn_a have_v care_n of_o their_o friend_n alive_a how_o &_o for_o what_o cause_n soever_o much_o more_o have_v the_o saint_n and_o save_v person_n and_o if_o those_o in_o hell_n have_v mean_n to_o express_v their_o cogitation_n and_o desire_n us._n and_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o abraham_n so_o far_o distant_a both_o by_o place_n and_o condition_n much_o rather_o may_v the_o live_a pray_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o be_v hear_v of_o they_o betwixt_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n militant_a and_o heaven_n 32._o be_v continual_a passage_n of_o soul_n and_o *_o angel_n ascend_v and_o descend_v by_o jacobs_n ladder_n m●n_z must_v not_o for_o all_o that_o be_v curious_a to_o search_v how_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a express_v their_o mind_n and_o be_v hear_v one_o of_o a_o other_o and_o so_o fall_v to_o blasphemy_n as_o caluin_n do_v 3_o ask_v whether_o their_o ear_n be_v so_o long_o to_o hear_v so_o far_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o wicked_o measure_v all_o thing_n by_o mortal_a man_n corporal_n gross_a manner_n of_o utter_v conceit_n one_o to_o a_o other_o 24._o which_o be_v not_o here_o do_v by_o this_o damn_a nor_o by_o abraham_n with_o corporal_a instrument_n of_o tongue_n tooth_n and_o ear_n though_o for_o the_o better_a express_v of_o the_o damn_n case_n christ_n vouchsave_v to_o utter_v it_o in_o term_n agree_v to_o our_o capacity_n chap._n xvii_o so_o damnable_a it_o be_v to_o be_v author_n of_o a_o schism_n 3_o that_o we_o must_v rather_o forgive_v be_v it_o never_o so_o often_o 5_o we_o must_v he_o fervent_a in_o faith_n 7_o and_o humble_a withal_o know_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o god_n and_o not_o he_o to_o us._n ″_o the_o nine_o jew_n be_v ungrateful_a after_o that_o he_o have_v cure_v their_o leprosy_n but_o the_o one_o samaritane_n the_o one_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n far_o otherwise_o 20_o the_o pharisee_n ask_v when_o come_v this_o kingdom_n of_o god_n of_o who_o approach_v they_o have_v now_o hear_v so_o much_o he_o teach_v that_o god_n must_v reign_v within_o we_o 22_o and_o warn_v we_o after_o his_o passion_n never_o to_o go_v out_o of_o his_o catholic_a church_n for_o any_o new_a secret_a come_n of_o christ_n that_o heretic_n shall_v pretend_v but_o only_o to_o expect_v his_o second_o come_v in_o glory_n 26_o prepare_v ourselves_o unto_o it_o because_o it_o shall_v come_v upon_o many_o unprovided_a 31_o special_o through_o the_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n a_o little_a before_o it_o verse_n 1_o and_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n 7_o it_o be_v come_v impossible_a that_o scandal_n shall_v not_o come_v 42._o but_o woe_n to_o he_o by_o who_o they_o come_v ✝_o verse_n 2_o it_o be_v more_o profitable_a for_o he_o if_o a_o millstone_n be_v put_v about_o his_o neck_n and_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n then_o that_o he_o scandalize_v one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o ✝_o verse_n 3_o look_v well_o to_o yourselves_o *_o if_o thy_o brother_n sin_n against_o thou_o 21._o rebuke_v he_o and_o if_o he_o do_v penance_n forgive_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o if_o he_o sin_n against_o thou_o seven_o time_n in_o a_o day_n and_o seven_o time_n in_o a_o day_n be_v convert_v unto_o thou_o say_v it_o repent_v i_o forgive_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 5_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o our_o lord_n increase_v faith_n in_o us._n ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o our_o lord_n say_v 20._o *_o if_o you_o have_v faith_n like_o to_o a_o mustard_n seed_n you_o may_v say_v to_o this_o mulberry_n tree_n be_v thou_o root_v up_o and_o be_v transplant_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o it_o will_v obey_v you_o ✝_o verse_n 7_o and_o which_o of_o you_o have_v a_o servant_n plow_a or_o keep_v cattle_n that_o will_v say_v to_o he_o return_v out_o of_o the_o field_n pass_v quick_o sit_v down_o ✝_o verse_n 8_o and_o say_v not_o to_o he_o make_v ready_a supper_n and_o gird_v thyself_o passion_n and_o serve_v i_o while_o i_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o afterward_o thou_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v ✝_o verse_n 9_o do_v he_o give_v that_o servant_n thanks_n for_o do_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o command_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 10_o i_o trow_v not_o so_o you_o also_o when_o you_o shall_v have_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v you_o say_v we_o be_v ″_o unprofitable_a servant_n we_o have_v do_v that_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v ✝_o verse_n 11_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o he_o go_v unto_o jerusalem_n he_o pass_v through_o the_o mid_n of_o samaria_n and_o galilee_n pentecost_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o when_o he_o enter_v into_o a_o certain_a town_n there_o meet_v he_o ten_o man_n that_o be_v leper_n who_o stand_v a_o far_o of_o ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n say_v jesus_n master_n have_v mercy_n on_o us._n ✝_o verse_n 14_o who_o as_o he_o see_v 2._o he_o say_v go_v *_o show_v yourselves_o ″_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v ″_o as_o they_o go_v they_o be_v make_v clean_o ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o one_o of_o they_o as_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v make_v clean_o go_v back_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n magnify_v god_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o fall_v on_o his_o face_n before_o his_o foot_n give_v thanks_n and_o this_o be_v a_o samaritane_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v be_v not_o ten_o make_v clean_o and_o where_o be_v the_o nine_o ✝_o verse_n 18_o there_o be_v not_o find_v that_o return_v and_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n but_o this_o stranger_n ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o arise_v go_v thy_o way_n because_o god_n thy_o faith_n hathmade_v thou_o safe_a ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 20_o and_o be_v ask_v of_o the_o pharisee_n when_o come_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n he_o answer_v they_o and_o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n come_v not_o with_o observation_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o neither_o shall_v they_o say_v loe_o here_o or_o lo_o there_o for_o lo_o sin_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o you_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o and_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o day_n will_v come_v when_o you_o shall_v desire_v to_o see_v one_o day_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o see_v 21._o ✝_o verse_n 23_o *_o and_o they_o will_v say_v to_o you_o loe_o here_o and_o lo_o there_o 23._o go_v not_o neither_o do_v you_o follow_v after_o ✝_o verse_n 24_o for_o even_o as_o the_o lightning_n that_o lighten_v from_o under_o heaven_n unto_o those_o part_n that_o be_v under_o heaven_n shine_v so_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v in_o his_o day_n ✝_o verse_n 25_o but_o first_o he_o must_v suffer_v many_o thing_n and_o be_v reject_v of_o this_o generation_n ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o 5_o day_n of_o noé_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n ✝_o verse_n 27_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v they_o do_v marry_v wife_n and_o be_v give_v to_o marriage_n even_o until_o the_o day_n that_o noé_n enter_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o destroy_v they_o al._n ✝_o verse_n 28_o likewise_o as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o *_o day_n of_o lot_n 24._o they_o do_v eat_v
these_o thing_n be_v strike_v sad_a because_o he_o be_v very_o scotfree_a ✝_o verse_n 24_o and_o jesus_n see_v he_o strike_v sad_a say_v how_o hardly_o shall_v they_o that_o have_v money_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 25_o for_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n then_o for_o a_o scotfree_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o they_o that_o hear_v say_v and_o who_o can_v be_v save_v ✝_o verse_n 27_o he_o say_v to_o they_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v impossible_a with_o man_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 28_o and_o peter_n say_v loe_o we_o have_v leave_v all_o thing_n and_o have_v follow_v thou_o ✝_o verse_n 29_o who_o say_v to_o they_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v left_a house_n or_o parent_n or_o brethren_n or_o jovin_n wife_n or_o child_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 30_o and_o shall_v not_o receive_v much_o more_o in_o this_o time_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v sake_n life_n everlasting_a ✝_o verse_n 31_o *_o and_o jesus_n take_v the_o twelue_fw-mi 32._o and_o say_v to_o they_o behold_v we_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n quiquagesme_fw-fr and_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v consummate_v which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n ✝_o verse_n 32_o for_o he_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o shall_v be_v mock_v and_o scourge_v and_o spit_v upon_o ✝_o verse_n 33_o and_o after_o they_o have_v scourge_v he_o they_o will_v kill_v he_o and_o the_o three_o day_n he_o shall_v rise_v again_o ✝_o verse_n 34_o and_o they_o understand_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n and_o this_o word_n be_v hide_v from_o they_o and_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v say_v ✝_o verse_n 35_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o he_o draw_v nigh_o to_o jericho_n a_o certain_a blind_a man_n sit_v by_o the_o way_n beg_v ✝_o verse_n 36_o and_o when_o he_o hear_v the_o multitude_n pass_v by_o he_o ask_v what_o this_o shall_v be_v ✝_o verse_n 37_o and_o they_o tell_v he_o that_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n pass_v by_o ✝_o verse_n 38_o and_o he_o cry_v say_v jesus_n son_n of_o david_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o ✝_o verse_n 39_o and_o they_o that_o go_v before_o rebuke_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v hold_v his_o peace_n but_o he_o cry_v much_o more_o son_n of_o david_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o ✝_o verse_n 40_o and_o jesus_n stand_v command_v he_o to_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v near_o he_o ask_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 41_o saying_n what_o will_v thou_o that_o i_o do_v to_o thou_o but_o he_o say_v lord_n that_o i_o may_v see_v ✝_o verse_n 42_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o do_v thou_o see_v thy_o faith_n have_v make_v thou_o whole_a ✝_o verse_n 43_o and_o forthwith_o he_o see_v and_o follow_v he_o magnify_v god_n and_o all_o the_o people_n as_o they_o see_v it_o give_v praise_n to_o god_n ⊢_o annotation_n chap._n xviii_o 8._o shall_v he_o find_v faith_n faith_n the_o luciferian_o and_o donatist_n use_v this_o place_n to_o excuse_v their_o fall_n from_o the_o church_n as_o our_o adversary_n now_o do_v say_v that_o it_o be_v decay_v in_o faith_n when_o they_o forsake_v it_o to_o who_o we_o answer_v as_o s._n hierom_n and_o s._n augustin_n answer_v they_o 〈◊〉_d that_o christ_n say_v not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o faith_n leave_v in_o earth_n but_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n the_o insinuate_v that_o at_o the_o late_a day_n in_o the_o great_a persecution_n of_o antichrist_n faith_n shall_v be_v more_o rare_a and_o the_o faithful_a among_o so_o many_o wicked_a not_o so_o notorious_a special_o that_o perfect_a faith_n contain_v devotion_n trust_n and_o affection_n towards_o god_n which_o our_o master_n so_o praise_v in_o certain_a upon_o who_o he_o wrought_v miracle_n and_o by_o force_n whereof_o mountain_n may_v be_v move_v which_o be_v rare_a even_o when_o the_o church_n flourish_v most_o chap._n xix_o in_o jeriche_n he_o lodge_v in_o the_o house_n of_o zachaus_fw-la a_o publican_n and_o against_o the_o murmur_a jew_n open_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o so_o do_v 11_o he_o show_v that_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v not_o be_v yet_o 15_o and_o whas_fw-ge then_o in_o the_o judgement_n he_o will_v do_v both_o to_o we_o of_o his_o church_n as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a 47_o and_o also_o to_o the_o reprobate_a jew_n 29_o be_v new_a come_v to_o the_o place_n of_o his_o passion_n he_o enter_v weep_v and_o foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o blind_a jerusalem_n which_o triumph_n as_o their_o christ_n 4●_n he_o show_v his_o zeal_n for_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o teach_v therein_o every_o day_n 47_o the_o ruler_n will_v destroy_v he_o but_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o people_n verse_n 1_o and_o enter_v in_o church_n he_o walk_v through_o jericho_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o and_o behold_v a_o man_n name_v zachaeus_n and_o this_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o the_o publican_n and_o he_o scotfree_a ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o seek_v to_o see_v jesus_n what_o he_o be_v and_o he_o can_v not_o for_o the_o multitude_n because_o he_o be_v little_a of_o stature_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o run_v before_o he_o ″_o go_v up_o into_o a_o sycomore_n tree_n that_o he_o may_v see_v he_o because_o he_o be_v to_o pass_v by_o it_o ✝_o verse_n 5_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o place_n jesus_n look_v up_o zachaeus_n see_v he_o and_o say_v to_o he_o zachaeus_n come_v down_o in_o haste_n because_o this_o day_n i_o must_v abide_v in_o thy_o house_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o he_o in_o haste_n come_v down_o and_o receive_v he_o rejoice_v ✝_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o all_o see_v it_o they_o murmur_v say_v that_o he_o turn_v in_o to_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o sinner_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o but_o zachaeus_n stand_v say_v to_o our_o lord_n behold_v the_o half_a of_o my_o good_n lord_n i_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o if_o i_o have_v defraud_v any_o man_n of_o any_o thing_n ″_o i_o restore_v fourfold_a ✝_o verse_n 9_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o that_o this_o day_n salvation_n be_v make_v to_o this_o house_n 12._o because_o that_o he_o also_o be_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n ✝_o verse_n 10_o *_o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v come_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 11_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n he_o add_v and_o speak_v a_o parable_n for_o that_o he_o be_v nigh_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o because_o they_o think_v that_o forthwith_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v manifest_v ✝_o verse_n 12_o he_o say_v therefore_o 25._o *_o a_o certain_a noble_a man_n go_v into_o a_o far_a country_n to_o take_v to_o himself_o a_o kingdom_n 14._o and_o to_o return_v ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o call_v his_o ten_o servant_n he_o give_v they_o ten_o pound_n and_o say_v to_o they_o occupie_n till_o i_o come_v ✝_o verse_n 14_o and_o his_o citizen_n hate_v he_o and_o they_o send_v a_o legacy_n after_o he_o say_v we_o will_v not_o have_v this_o man_n reign_n over_o us._n ✝_o verse_n 15_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o he_o return_v have_v receive_v his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o command_v his_o servant_n to_o be_v call_v to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o money_n that_o he_o may_v know_v how_o much_o every_o man_n have_v gain_v by_o occupy_v ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o first_o come_v say_v lord_n thy_o pound_n have_v get_v ten_o pound_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o well_o fare_v thou_o good_a servant_n because_o thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o a_o little_a thou_o shall_v have_v power_n over_o everlasting_a ten_o city_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o second_o come_v say_v lord_n thy_o pound_n have_v make_v five_o pound_n ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o and_o be_v thou_o over_o five_o city_n ✝_o verse_n 20_o and_o a_o other_o come_v say_v lord_n lo_o here_o thy_o pound_n which_o i_o have_v have_v lay_v up_o in_o a_o napkin_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o for_o i_o fear_v thou_o because_o thou_o be_v a_o austêre_fw-la man_n thou_o take_v up_o that_o thou_o do_v not_o set_v down_o and_o thou_o reape_v that_o which_o thou_o do_v not_o sow_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o he_o say_v to_o he_o by_o thy_o own_o mouth_n i_o judge_v thou_o naughty_a servant_n thou_o do_v know_v that_o i_o be_o a_o austere_a man_n take_v up_o that_o i_o set_v not_o down_o and_o reap_v that_o which_o i_o sow_v not_o ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o why_o do_v thou_o not_o give_v my_o money_n to_o the_o bank_n etc._n and_o i_o come_v may_v certes_o with_o usury_n have_v
&_o the_o commission_n of_o my_o father_n for_o preach_v work_a miracle_n and_o other_o grace_n i_o must_v not_o be_v tie_v to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v not_o a_o reprehension_n of_o our_o lady_n or_o signification_n that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v she_o in_o this_o or_o other_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n glory_n or_o the_o good_a of_o man_n for_o the_o event_n show_v the_o contrary_a but_o it_o be_v a_o lesson_n to_o the_o company_n that_o hear_v it_o and_o namely_o to_o his_o disciple_n that_o respect_n of_o kindred_n shall_v not_o draw_v they_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o reason_n or_o be_v the_o principal_a motion_n why_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n but_o god_n glory_n 5._o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v say_v by_o this_o you_o see_v petition_n our_o lady_n by_o her_o divine_a prudence_n and_o entiere_fw-fr familiarity_n and_o acquaintance_n with_o all_o his_o manner_n of_o speech_n know_v it_o be_v no_o check_n to_o she_o but_o a_o doctrine_n to_o other_o and_o that_o she_o have_v no_o repulse_n though_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v his_o time_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o work_v miracle_n not_o doubt_v but_o he_o will_v begin_v a_o little_a before_o his_o ordinary_a time_n for_o her_o sake_n as_o s._n cyril_n think_v he_o do_v 23._o and_o therefore_o she_o admonish_v the_o waiter_n to_o mark_v well_o &_o to_o execute_v whatsoever_o christ_n shall_v bid_v they_o do_v 1●_n cast_v they_o out_o by_o this_o chastise_v corporal_o the_o defiler_n and_o abuser_n of_o the_o temple_n he_o do_v not_o only_o show_v his_o power_n power_n that_o be_v but_o one_o poor_a man_n he_o can_v by_o force_n execute_v his_o pleasure_n upon_o so_o many_o sturdy_a fellow_n but_o also_o his_o soneralne_a authority_n over_o all_o offender_n and_o that_o not_o upon_o their_o soul_n only_o as_o by_o excommunication_n and_o spiritual_a penalty_n but_o so_o far_o as_o be_v requisite_a for_o the_o execution_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n upon_o their_o body_n and_o good_n also_o that_o the_o spiritualty_n may_v learn_v how_o far_o and_o in_o what_o case_n for_o just_a zeal_n of_o christ_n church_n they_o may_v use_v and_o exercise_n both_o spiritual_o and_o temporal_o their_o force_n and_o faculty_n against_o offender_n special_o against_o the_o prophaner_n of_o god_n church_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n allusion_n 1_o cor._n 3._o if_o any_o defile_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n he_o will_v god_n destroy_v ●4_n jesus_n commit_v not_o himself_o s._n augustine_n apply_v this_o their_o first_o faith_n and_o belief_n in_o christ_n faith_n sudden_o raise_v upon_o the_o admiration_n of_o his_o wonder_n 11._o but_o yet_o not_o full_o form_v or_o establish_v in_o they_o unto_o the_o faith_n of_o novice_n or_o catechumen_n in_o the_o church_n and_o christ_n not_o commit_v his_o person_n to_o they_o as_o yet_o to_o the_o church_n like_o wariness_n and_o wisdom_n in_o not_o open_v not_o give_v to_o they_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n because_o all_o be_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v with_o that_o high_a point_n without_o full_a trial_n of_o their_o faith_n chap._n iii_o he_o teach_v nicodemus_n that_o to_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n baptism_n be_v necessary_a as_o be_v our_o regeneration_n 10_o which_o point_n nicodemus_n as_o then_o not_o understanding_n 11_o he_o show_v that_o they_o must_v believe_v he_o and_o what_o good_a cause_n there_o be_v for_o they_o so_o to_o do_v ●3_n after_o this_o he_o also_o baptize_v and_o john_n likewise_o at_o the_o same_o time_n 25_o whereupon_o a_o question_n be_v move_v whether_o baptism_n be_v better_a 25_o john_n answer_v it_o by_o say_v that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o inferior_a to_o christ_n as_o a_o mere_a man_n to_o god_n most_o high_a verse_n 1_o and_o there_o be_v a_o man_n of_o the_o pharisee_n ●_o name_v nicodemus_n a_o prince_n of_o the_o jew_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o this_o man_n come_v to_o jesus_n by_o night_n and_o say_v to_o he_o rabbi_n we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v come_v from_o god_n a_o master_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o sign_n which_o thou_o do_v unless_o god_n be_v with_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 3_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v to_o he_o amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o can_v not_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o nicodemus_n say_v to_o he_o how_o can_v a_o man_n be_v bear_v when_o he_o be_v old_a can_v he_o enter_v into_o his_o mother_n womb_n again_o and_o be_v bear_v ✝_o verse_n 5_o jesus_n answer_v amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o unless_o a_o man_n be_v ″_o bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n &_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v spirit_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o marvel_v not_o that_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o you_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o ✝_o verse_n 8_o the_o spirit_n breathe_v where_o good_a he_o will_v and_o thou_o hear_v his_o voice_n but_o thou_o know_a not_o whence_o he_o come_v and_o whither_o he_o go_v so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n ✝_o verse_n 9_o nicodemus_n answer_v &_o say_v to_o he_o how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v do_v ✝_o verse_n 10_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o be_v a_o master_n in_o israel_n and_o be_v thou_o ignorant_a of_o these_o thing_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o that_o we_o speak_v that_o which_o we_o know_v and_o that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v we_o testify_v and_o our_o testimony_n you_o receive_v not_o ✝_o verse_n 12_o if_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o earthly_a thing_n and_o you_o believe_v not_o how_o if_o i_o shall_v speak_v to_o you_o heavenly_a thing_n will_v you_o believe_v ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o no_o man_n have_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o descend_v from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 9_o ✝_o verse_n 14_o and_o as_o *_o moses_n exalt_v the_o serpent_n in_o the_o desert_n so_o must_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v exalt_v ✝_o verse_n 15_o that_o every_o one_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o perish_v not_o whitsonweeke_n but_o may_v have_v life_n everlasting_a ✝_o verse_n 16_o for_o so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only-begotten_a son_n that_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o perish_v not_o but_o may_v have_v life_n everlasting_a ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 17_o for_o god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v be_v save_v by_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 18_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v not_o judge_v but_o he_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v ″_o be_v already_o judge_v because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only-begotten_a son_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n because_o the_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n have_v love_v the_o darkness_n rather_o than_o the_o light_n for_o their_o work_n be_v evil_a ✝_o verse_n 20_o for_o every_o one_o that_o do_v ill_a hate_v the_o light_n and_o come_v not_o to_o the_o light_n that_o his_o work_n may_v not_o be_v control_v ✝_o verse_n 21_o but_o he_o that_o do_v verity_n come_v to_o the_o light_n that_o his_o work_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a because_o they_o be_v do_v in_o god_n ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o after_o these_o thing_n jesus_n come_v and_o his_o disciple_n into_o the_o country_n of_o jewrie_n and_o there_o he_o abide_v with_o they_o and_o baptize_v ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o john_n also_o be_v baptise_v in_o aenon_n beside_o salim_n because_o there_o be_v much_o water_n there_o and_o they_o come_v and_o be_v baptize_v ✝_o verse_n 24_o for_o john_n be_v not_o yet_o cast_v into_o prison_n ✝_o verse_n 25_o and_o there_o rise_v a_o question_n of_o johns_n disciple_n with_o the_o jew_n concern_v purification_n ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o they_o come_v to_o john_n and_o say_v to_o he_o rabbi_n he_o that_o be_v with_o thou_o beyond_o jordan_n 19_o to_o who_o *_o thou_o do_v give_v testimony_n behold_v he_o baptize_v and_o all_o come_v to_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 27_o john_n answer_v and_o say_v a_o man_n can_v not_o receive_v any_o thing_n unless_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o heaven_n 20._o ✝_o verse_n 28_o yourselves_o do_v bear_v i_o witness_v *_o that_o i_o say_v i_o be_o not_o christ_n but_o that_o i_o be_o send_v before_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 29_o he_o that_o have_v the_o bride_n be_v the_o bridegroom_n but_o the_o friend_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n that_o stand_v and_o hear_v he_o rejoice_v with_o joy_n for_o the_o voice_n
such_o grace_n and_o mercy_n as_o also_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o show_v how_o ready_o the_o gentile_n in_o so_o many_o nation_n 19_o be_v convert_v by_o one_o apostle_n only_o who_o from_o jerusalem_n even_o to_o illy●icum_n replenish_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o part_n of_o the_o work_n so_o make_v by_o s._n peter_n with_o the_o rest_n 9_o do_v s._n paul_n himself_o touch_v that_o we_o unto_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o unto_o the_o circuncision_n nevertheless_o before_o his_o come_n to_o rome_n not_o only_o be_v the_o church_n come_v to_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a act._n the_o last_o chap._n there_o plant_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o other_o as_o likewise_o by_o s._n peter_n it_o be_v plant_v in_o the_o first_o gentile_n before_o that_o s._n paul_n begin_v the_o take_n of_o it_o away_o from_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o translate_n of_o it_o to_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o also_o so_o not_o able_a be_v the_o same_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o s._n paul_n writing_n his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 8._o before_o he_o come_v thither_o say_v your_o faith_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o they_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v that_o nation_n whereof_o christ_n tell_v the_o jew_n 43._o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o you_o &_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o a_o nation_n yield_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o as_o before_o we_o note_v the_o gospel_n as_o they_o be_v read_v both_o at_o matin_n and_o mass_n through_o out_o the_o year_n in_o their_o convenient_a time_n and_o place_n so_o the_o book_n follow_a as_o also_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v read_v in_o the_o say_a service_n of_o the_o church_n for_o epistle_n and_o lesson_n in_o their_o time_n &_o place_n as_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v note_v in_o every_o of_o they_o see_v the_o very_a same_o order_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o s._n ambrose_n ep_v 33._o s._n augustine_n serm._n de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la 139_o 140_o 141_o 144._o s._n leo_n ser._n 2_o &_o 4_o the_o quadrag_n &_o ser._n 13_o &_o 19_o the_o pass_n domini_fw-la s._n gregory_n in_o his_o 40_o homily_n upon_o the_o gospel_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 10._o chap._n i._n part_n christ_n now_o ready_a to_o ascend_v church_n bid_v the_o apostle_n to_o expect_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v foretell_v where_o be_v strengthen_v by_o he_o they_o shall_v begin_v his_o church_n and_o how_o far_o they_o shall_v carry_v it_o 9_o after_o his_o ascension_n they_o be_v warn_v by_o two_o angel_n to_o set_v their_o mind_n upon_o his_o second_o come_v 14_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o expectation_n 15_o peter_n begin_v to_o execute_v his_o vicarship_n give_v instruction_n and_o order_n by_o which_o mathias_n be_v elect_v apostle_n in_o the_o place_n of_o judas_n verse_n 1_o the_o *_o first_o treatise_n i_o make_v of_o thing_n all_o thing_n 3._o o_o theophilus_n day_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o to_o teach_v ✝_o verse_n two_o until_o the_o day_n wherein_o ″_o give_v commandment_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o apostle_n who_o he_o choose_v he_o be_v assumpt_v ✝_o verse_n 3_o to_o whon_n he_o show_v also_o himself_o alive_a after_o his_o passion_n in_o many_o argument_n for_o forty_o day_n appear_v to_o they_o &_o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o and_o eat_v with_o they_o 49._o *_o he_o command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n but_o shall_v expect_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n 26._o which_o you_o *_o have_v hear_v say_v he_o by_o my_o mouth_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o for_o john_n in_o deed_n baptize_v with_o ghost_n water_n but_o *_o you_o shall_v be_v baptism_n baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o these_o few_o day_n 16._o ●_o ✝_o verse_n 6_o they_o therefore_o that_o be_v assemble_v ask_v he_o say_v lord_n whether_o at_o this_o time_n will_v thou_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o ″_o it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o to_o know_v time_n or_o moment_n which_o the_o father_n have_v put_v in_o his_o own_o power_n 1._o ✝_o verse_n 8_o but_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o *_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o all_o jewrie_n and_o samaria_n and_o even_o to_o the_o utmost_a of_o the_o earth_n 51._o ✝_o verse_n 9_o and_o *_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n in_o their_o sight_n he_o be_v elevate_v and_o a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n ✝_o verse_n 10_o and_o when_o they_o behold_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n behold_v two_o man_n stand_v beside_o they_o in_o white_a garment_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o who_o also_o say_v you_o man_n of_o galilee_n why_o stand_v you_o look_v into_o heaven_n this_o jesus_n which_o be_v ″_o assumpt_v from_o you_o into_o heaven_n shall_v so_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 12_o then_o they_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o mount_n that_o be_v call_v olivet_n which_o be_v by_o jerusalem_n distant_a a_o sabbath_n journey_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o and_o when_o they_o be_v enter_v in_o they_o go_v up_o into_o a_o upper_a chamber_n where_o abode_n society_n peter_n &_o john_n james_n and_o andrew_n philippe_n and_o thomas_n bartholomew_n and_o matthew_n james_n of_o alphaeus_n and_o simon_n zelóte_v and_o jude_n of_o james._n ✝_o verse_n 14_o al_n these_o be_v perseuér_v with_o one_o mind_n in_o prayer_n with_o the_o 1579._o woman_n and_o ″_o marry_o the_o mother_n of_o jesus_n and_o his_o brethren_n ✝_o verse_n 15_o ●4_n in_o those_o day_n ″_o peter_n rise_v up_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o brethren_n say_v and_o the_o multitude_n of_o person_n together_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o ✝_o verse_n 16_o you_o man_n brethren_n *_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v fulfil_v which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v before_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o david_n concern_v judas_n 9_o who_o be_v the_o *_o captain_n of_o they_o that_o apprehend_v jesus_n 18_o ✝_o verse_n 17_o who_o be_v number_v among_o we_o and_o obtain_v the_o lot_n of_o this_o ministry_n 3._o ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o he_o in_o deed_n have_v possess_v a_o *_o field_n of_o the_o reward_n of_o iniquity_n 7._o and_o be_v hang_v he_o burst_v in_o the_o mid_n and_o all_o his_o bowel_n gush_v out_o ✝_o verse_n 19_o and_o it_o be_v make_v notorious_a to_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o that_o the_o same_o field_n be_v call_v in_o their_o tongue_n hacel-dema_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o field_n of_o blood_n ✝_o verse_n 20_o for_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o psalm_n 26._o be_v their_o habitation_n make_v desert_n and_o be_v there_o none_o to_o dwell_n in_o it_o and_o his_o bishopric_n let_v another_o take_v 8._o ✝_o verse_n 21_o therefore_o of_o these_o man_n that_o have_v assemble_v with_o we_o all_o the_o time_n that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n go_v in_o and_o go_v out_o among_o we_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o beginning_n from_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n until_o the_o day_n wherein_o he_o be_v assumpt_v from_o we_o again_o there_o must_v one_o of_o these_o be_v make_v a_o witness_v with_o we_o of_o his_o resurrection_n ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o they_o appoint_v two_o joseph_n who_o be_v call_v barsabas_n who_o be_v surname_v justus_n and_o mathias_n ✝_o verse_n 24_o and_o pray_v they_o say_v thou_o lord_n that_o know_a the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n show_v of_o these_o two_o one_o who_o thou_o have_v choose_v ✝_o verse_n 25_o to_o take_v the_o place_n of_o this_o ministry_n and_o apostleship_n from_o the_o which_o judas_n have_v prevaricate_v that_o he_o may_v go_v to_o his_o own_o place_n ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o they_o give_v they_o ″_o lot_n and_o the_o lot_n fall_v upon_o mathias_n and_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n ⊢_o annotation_n chap._n 1._o 2._o give_v commandment_n he_o mean_v the_o power_n give_v they_o to_o preach_v to_o baptize_v to_o remit_v sin_n and_o general_o the_o whole_a commission_n and_o charge_n of_o government_n of_o the_o church_n after_o he_o and_o in_o his_o name_n steed_n and_o right_o the_o which_o regiment_n be_v give_v they_o together_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o assist_v they_o therein_o for_o ever_o 7._o it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o us._n it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o nor_o needful_a for_o the_o church_n to_o know_v the_o time_n &_o moment_n of_o the_o world_n the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n and_o such_o other_o god_n secret_n this_o be_v enough_o in_o that_o
graff_v into_o their_o own_o olive_n ✝_o verse_n 25_o for_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a brethren_n of_o this_o mystery_n that_o you_o be_v not_o wise_a in_o yourselves_o that_o blindness_n in_o part_n have_v chance_v in_o israël_n until_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n may_v enter_v ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o also_o all_o israël_n may_v be_v save_v 20._o as_o it_o be_v write_v there_o shall_v come_v out_o of_o zion_n he_o that_o shall_v deliver_v and_o shall_v avert_v impiety_n from_o jacob_n ✝_o verse_n 27_o and_o this_o to_o they_o the_o testament_n from_o i_o when_o i_o shall_v have_v take_v away_o their_o sin_n ✝_o verse_n 28_o ″_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n in_o deed_n enemy_n for_o you_o but_o according_a to_o the_o election_n most_o dear_a for_o the_o father_n ✝_o verse_n 29_o for_o without_o repentance_n be_v the_o gift_n and_o the_o vocation_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 30_o for_o ″_o as_o you_o also_o sometime_o do_v not_o believe_v god_n but_o now_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n because_o of_o their_o incredulity_n ✝_o verse_n 31_o so_o these_o also_o now_o have_v not_o believe_v for_o your_o mercy_n that_o they_o also_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n ✝_o verse_n 32_o for_o god_n have_v ″_o conclude_v all_o into_o incredulity_n that_o he_o may_v have_v mercy_n on_o al._n ✝_o verse_n 33_o ″_o o_o depth_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n sunday_n how_o incomprehensible_a be_v his_o judgement_n 13._o and_o his_o way_n unsearchable_a ✝_o verse_n 34_o for_o *_o who_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o who_o have_v be_v his_o counseler_n ✝_o verse_n 35_o or_o who_o have_v first_o give_v to_o he_o and_o retribution_n shall_v be_v make_v he_o ✝_o verse_n 36_o for_o of_o he_o and_o by_o he_o and_o in_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n ⊢_o annotation_n chap._n xi_o 4._o seven_o thousand_o the_o heretic_n allege_v this_o place_n and_o example_n very_o impertinent_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v whole_o secret_a church_n hide_v or_o unknowen_a for_o though_o the_o faithful_a be_v force_v to_o keep_v close_o in_o that_o persecution_n of_o achab_n and_o jezabel_n which_o be_v only_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n that_o be_v of_o isaael_n yet_o at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n the_o external_a worship_n and_o profession_n of_o faith_n be_v open_a to_o all_o the_o world_n 17._o and_o well_o know_v to_o elias_n &_o the_o faithful_a so_o many_o that_o *_o the_o very_a soldier_n only_o be_v number_v above_o ten_o hundred_o thousand_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o the_o jew_n we_o rest_v upon_o better_a promise_n than_o they_o and_o we_o will_v not_o put_v the_o protestant_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v 7000_o of_o their_o sect_n when_o their_o new_a elias_n luther_n begin_v but_o let_v they_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v seven_o or_o any_o one_o either_o then_o or_o in_o all_o age_n before_o he_o that_o be_v in_o all_o point_n of_o his_o belief_n heretic_n there_o be_v before_o he_o as_o jovinian_a vigilantius_n heluidius_fw-la wicleffe_n etc._n etc._n and_o with_o he_o zuinglius_fw-la caluin_n etc._n etc._n who_o believe_v as_o he_o do_v in_o some_o thing_n but_o not_o in_o al._n 6._o not_o now_o of_o work_n if_o salvation_n be_v attribute_v to_o good_a work_n do_v of_o nature_n without_o faith_n &_o god_n help_v salvation_n the_o same_o can_v not_o be_v of_o grace_n for_o such_o work_n exclude_v grace_n favour_n and_o mercy_n and_o challenge_v only_o of_o debt_n and_o not_o of_o gift_n therefore_o take_v heed_n here_o of_o the_o heretic_n exposition_n that_o untrue_o exclude_v christian_n man_n work_n from_o necessity_n or_o merit_n of_o salvation_n which_o be_v do_v with_o and_o by_o god_n grace_n and_o therefore_o evident_o consist_v with_o the_o same_o and_o be_v join_v with_o god_n grace_n as_o cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n our_o adversary_n be_v like_o if_o apothecary_n ever_o take_v quid_fw-la pro_fw-la quo_fw-la either_o of_o ignorance_n or_o of_o intent_n to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a ●_o god_n have_v give_v sin_n it_o do_v not_o signify_v his_o work_v or_o action_n but_o his_o permission_n chris_n ho._n 19_o in_o ep_n ro._n and_o s._n augustine_n say_v sixtum_fw-la not_o by_o put_v malice_n into_o they_o but_o by_o not_o impart_v his_o grace_n unto_o they_o and_o that_o through_o their_o own_o desert_n always_o and_o their_o own_o will_n ever_o proper_o work_v the_o same_o see_v annot._n mat._n c._n 13_o 14._o ro._n c._n 1_o 24._o 20._o because_o of_o incredulity_n etc._n he_o repress_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o gentile_n vaunt_v themselves_o of_o their_o receive_n and_o of_o the_o jew_n rejection_n namely_o in_o that_o they_o think_v the_o jew_n to_o be_v forsake_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o that_o they_o may_v come_v into_o their_o room_n declare_v that_o the_o direct_a and_o proper_a cause_n of_o their_o forsake_v be_v their_o incredulity_n exhort_v the_o gentile_n to_o beware_v of_o the_o same_o because_o they_o may_v fall_v as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o and_o that_o god_n be_v as_o like_a to_o execute_v justice_n against_o they_o as_o against_o the_o jew_n as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o many_o nation_n fall_v to_o heresy_n 28._o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n in_o respect_n or_o as_o concern_v belief_n in_o christ_n and_o receive_v the_o gospel_n they_o be_v god_n enemy_n by_o occasion_n of_o which_o their_o incredulity_n the_o gentile_n find_v mercy_n otherwise_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o special_a election_n of_o that_o nation_n and_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o patriarch_n the_o jew_n be_v dear_a to_o he_o still_o for_o god_n never_o promise_v but_o he_o perform_v nor_o repent_v himself_o of_o the_o privilege_n give_v to_o that_o nation_n 30._o for_o as_o you_o as_o the_o gentile_n which_o before_o believe_v not_o find_v mercy_n and_o come_v to_o faith_n when_o the_o jew_n do_v fall_v so_o the_o jew_v not_o now_o believe_v when_o all_o the_o gentile_n have_v obtain_v mercy_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o god_n disposition_n obtain_v grace_n and_o pardon_n as_o the_o gentile_n have_v do_v 32._o conclude_v al._n that_o so_o god_n take_v all_o nation_n and_o all_o man_n in_o sin_n which_o they_o fall_v into_o not_o by_o his_o drift_n or_o cause_v but_o of_o their_o own_o free_a will_v may_v of_o his_o mercy_n call_v and_o convert_v who_o and_o in_o what_o order_n he_o will_v and_o the_o party_n have_v no_o cause_n to_o brag_v of_o their_o deserve_n but_o both_o country_n and_o particular_a man_n may_v refer_v their_o eternal_a election_n and_o their_o first_o calling_n and_o conversion_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o mercy_n only_o no_o work_n which_o they_o have_v before_o in_o their_o incredulity_n deserve_v any_o such_o thing_n though_o their_o work_n afterward_o procede_v of_o faith_n and_o grace_n do_v merit_n heaven_n 33._o o_o depth_n predestination_n the_o apostle_n conclude_v that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o search_v further_o into_o god_n secret_a and_o unsearchable_a counsel_n of_o the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o reject_v the_o jew_n otherwise_o then_o this_o that_o all_o which_o be_v reject_v for_o their_o sin_n be_v just_o reject_v and_o all_o that_o be_v save_v by_o god_n great_a mercy_n and_o christ_n grace_n be_v save_v and_o whosoever_o seek_v among_o the_o people_n to_o spread_v contagion_n of_o curiosity_n by_o seek_v further_o after_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d man_v &_o angel_n reach_v they_o overreache_v &_o overthrow_v themselves_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v save_v believe_v obey_v the_o church_n fear_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n that_o be_v thy_o part_n and_o every_o man_n else_o thou_o may_v not_o examine_v whether_o thou_o be_v predestinate_a or_o reprobate_a nor_o seek_v to_o know_v the_o way_n of_o god_n secret_a judgement_n towards_o thyself_o or_o other_o man_n it_o be_v the_o common_a enemy_n of_o our_o soul_n predestination_n that_o in_o this_o unhappy_a time_n have_v open_v blasphemous_a tongue_n and_o direct_v the_o proud_a pen_n of_o caluin_n beza_n verone_n and_o such_o reprobate_n to_o the_o discuss_n of_o such_o particular_n to_o the_o perdition_n of_o many_o a_o simple_a man_n and_o special_o of_o young_a scholar_n in_o university_n which_o with_o less_o study_n may_v learn_v to_o be_v proud_n and_o curious_a then_o to_o be_v humble_a wise_a and_o obedient_a chap._n xii_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o mortification_n of_o the_o body_n moral_n 2_o to_z renovation_n of_o the_o mind_n 3_o to_o keep_v of_o unity_n by_o humility_n ●_o to_o the_o right_n use_v of_o their_o gift_n and_o function_n
barbarous_a yea_o and_o the_o service_n of_o our_o own_o language_n within_o a_o few_o hundred_o year_n or_o rather_o every_o age_n shall_v whole_o become_v barbarous_a and_o unknowen_a to_o ourselves_o our_o tongue_n as_o all_o vulgar_a do_v so_o often_o change_v and_o for_o edification_n that_o be_v for_o increase_v of_o faith_n true_a knowledge_n and_o good_a life_n the_o experience_n of_o a_o few_o year_n have_v give_v all_o the_o world_n a_o full_a demonstration_n whether_o our_o forefather_n be_v not_o as_o wise_a edify_v as_o faithful_a as_o devout_a as_o fearful_a to_o break_v god_n law_n and_o as_o likely_a to_o be_v save_v as_o we_o be_v in_o all_o our_o tongue_n translation_n and_o english_a prayer_n much_o vanity_n curiosity_n contempt_n of_o superior_n dispute_n emulation_n contention_n schism_n horrible_a error_n profenation_n and_o diwlgation_n of_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o the_o dreadful_a sacrament_n 13._o *_o which_o of_o purpose_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o vulgar_a as_o s._n denys_n eccl._n hier._n c._n 1._o and_o s._n basil_n de_fw-fr sp._n sanct._n c._n 27._o testify_v be_v fall_v by_o the_o same_o but_o virtue_n or_o sound_a knowledge_n none_o at_o al._n wherein_o this_o also_o be_v a_o gross_a illusion_n and_o untruth_n understanding_n that_o the_o force_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n sacrifice_n and_o common_a prayer_n depend_v upon_o the_o people_n understanding_n hear_v or_o knowledge_n the_o principal_a efficacy_n of_o such_o thing_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v special_o of_o the_o very_a virtue_n of_o the_o work_n and_o the_o public_a office_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o be_v appoint_v in_o christ_n behalf_n to_o dispose_v these_o mystery_n to_o our_o most_o good_a the_o infant_n innocent_a idiot_n and_o unlearned_a take_v no_o less_o fruit_n of_o baptism_n and_o all_o other_o divine_a office_n meet_v for_o every_o one_o condition_n than_o the_o learn_a clerk_n in_o the_o realm_n and_o more_o if_o they_o be_v more_o humble_a charitable_a devour_v and_o obedient_a than_o the_o other_o have_v less_o of_o these_o quality_n and_o more_o learning_n which_o we_o say_v not_o country_n as_o though_o it_o be_v inconvenient_a for_o the_o people_n to_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o holy_a ceremony_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o to_o their_o comfort_n and_o necessary_a knowledge_n both_o by_o preach_v catechise_v and_o read_v of_o good_a catholic_a book_n christian_a people_n do_v learn_v in_o all_o nation_n much_o more_o in_o those_o country_n where_o the_o service_n be_v in_o latin_a then_o in_o our_o nation_n god_n know_v but_o we_o say_v that_o there_o be_v other_o wale_n to_o instruct_v they_o and_o the_o same_o less_o subject_a to_o danger_n and_o disorder_n then_o to_o turn_v it_o into_o vulgar_a tongue_n we_o say_v the_o simple_a people_n and_o many_o one_o that_o think_v themselves_o some_o body_n understand_v as_o little_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o diverse_a psalm_n lesson_n and_o orison_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o if_o they_o be_v in_o latin_a yea_o and_o often_o take_v they_o in_o a_o wrong_n perverse_a and_o pernicious_a sense_n which_o light_o they_o can_v not_o have_v do_v in_o latin_n we_o say_v that_o such_o as_o will_v learn_v in_o devotion_n and_o humility_n may_v and_o must_v rather_o with_o diligence_n learn_v the_o tongue_n that_o such_o divine_a thing_n be_v write_v in_o or_o use_v other_o diligence_n in_o hear_v sermon_n and_o instruction_n then_o for_o a_o few_o man_n not_o necessary_a knowledge_n the_o holy_a universal_a order_n of_o god_n church_n shall_v be_v alter_v for_o if_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n only_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a necessary_a nor_o almost_o possible_a to_o accommodate_v their_o service_n book_n to_o every_o province_n and_o people_n of_o diverse_a tongue_n how_o much_o less_o shall_v the_o whole_a church_n so_o do_v consist_v of_o so_o many_o difference_n neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n in_o all_o this_o chapter_n appoint_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v but_o admonish_v they_o to_o pray_v and_o labour_n for_o the_o grace_n of_o understanding_n and_o interpretation_n or_o to_o get_v other_o to_o interpret_v or_o expound_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o much_o more_o may_v we_o do_v concern_v the_o service_n in_o latin_a which_o be_v no_o strange_a nor_o miraculous_o get_v or_o understand_v tongue_n but_o common_a to_o the_o most_o and_o chief_a church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v be_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n daily_o with_o all_o diligence_n through_o out_o all_o these_o part_n of_o christendom_n expound_v in_o every_o house_n school_n church_n and_o pulpit_n and_o be_v so_o well_o know_v for_o every_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o divine_a service_n according_o that_o by_o the_o diligence_n of_o parent_n master_n and_o curate_n every_o catholic_a of_o age_n almost_o can_v tell_v the_o sense_n of_o every_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n what_o to_o answer_n when_o to_o say_v amen_o at_o the_o priest_n benediction_n when_o to_o confess_v when_o to_o adore_v when_o to_o stand_v when_o to_o kneel_v when_o to_o receive_v what_o to_o receive_v when_o to_o come_v when_o to_o depart_v and_o all_o other_o duty_n of_o pray_v and_o serve_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o thus_o be_v it_o evident_a that_o s._n paul_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o common_a tongue_n of_o the_o church_n service_n second_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o he_o mean_v not_o nor_o write_v any_o word_n in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o church_n public_a service_n prayer_n or_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n wherein_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n special_o consist_v but_o only_o of_o a_o certain_a exercise_n of_o mutual_a conference_n wherein_o one_o do_v open_a to_o a_o other_o and_o to_o the_o assembly_n miraculous_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o such_o canticle_n psalm_n secret_a mystery_n sort_n of_o language_n and_o other_o revelation_n as_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v unto_o certain_a both_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o that_o first_o beginning_n of_o his_o church_n in_o do_v of_o this_o the_o corinthian_n commit_v many_o disorder_n turn_v god_n gift_n to_o pride_n and_o vanity_n and_o namely_o that_o gift_n of_o tongue_n which_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o least_o of_o all_o gift_n 13._o yet_o most_o puff_v up_o the_o haver_n and_o now_o also_o do_v common_o puff_n up_o the_o professor_n of_o such_o knowledge_n according_a as_o s._n augustine_n write_v thereof_o argument_n this_o exercise_n and_o the_o disorder_n thereof_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n for_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v read_v in_o antiquity_n these_o fourtene_n hundred_o year_n and_o therefore_o neither_o the_o use_n nor_o abuse_v nor_o s._n paul_n reprehension_n or_o redress_v thereof_o can_v concern_v any_o whit_n the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n furthermore_o this_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o corinthian_n have_v their_o service_n in_o greek_a at_o this_o same_o time_n and_o it_o be_v not_o do_v in_o these_o miraculous_a tongue_n nothing_o be_v mean_v then_o of_o the_o church_n service_n again_o the_o public_a service_n have_v but_o one_o language_n in_o this_o exercise_n they_o speak_v in_o many_o tongue_n in_o the_o public_a service_n every_o man_n have_v not_o his_o own_o special_a tongue_n his_o special_a interpretation_n special_a revelation_n proper_a psalm_n but_o in_o this_o they_o have_v again_o the_o public_a service_n have_v in_o it_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n principal_o which_o be_v not_o do_v in_o this_o time_n of_o conference_n for_o into_o this_o exercise_n be_v admit_v catechuman_n and_o infidel_n and_o whosoever_o will_v in_o this_o woman_n before_o s._n paul_n order_n do_v speak_v and_o prophesy_v so_o do_v they_o never_o in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o many_o other_o plain_a difference_n that_o by_o no_o mean_n the_o apostle_n word_n can_v be_v right_o and_o true_o apply_v to_o the_o corinthian_n service_n then_o or_o we_o now_o therefore_o it_o be_v either_o great_a ignorance_n of_o the_o protestant_n or_o great_a guilfulnes_n so_o untrue_o and_o perverse_o to_o apply_v they_o neither_o be_v here_o any_o thing_n mean_v of_o the_o private_a prayer_n which_o devout_a person_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o sex_n have_v ever_o use_v otherwise_o special_o in_o latin_a as_o well_o upon_o their_o primar_n as_o bead_n for_o the_o private_a prayer_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v psalm_n or_o hymn_n and_o sonnet_n new_o inspire_v to_o they_o by_o god_n and_o in_o this_o conference_n or_o prophesy_v utter_v to_o one_o a_o other_o comfort_n or_o to_o themselves_o and_o god_n only_o but_o the_o prayer_n psalm_n and_o holy_a word_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n use_v private_o be_v not_o compose_v by_o they_o nor_o diverse_o inspire_v
which_o cause_n comfort_v one_o a_o other_o &_o edify_v one_o a_o other_o as_o also_o you_o do_v ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n that_o you_o will_v know_v they_o that_o labour_n among_o you_o and_o that_o govern_v you_o in_o our_o lord_n and_o admonish_v you_o ✝_o verse_n 13_o that_o you_o have_v they_o more_o aboudant_o in_o charity_n for_o their_o work_n have_v peace_n with_o they_o ✝_o verse_n 14_o lent_n and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n 9_o admonish_v the_o unquiet_a comfort_v the_o weak-minded_n bear_v up_o the_o weak_a be_v patient_a to_o al._n ✝_o verse_n 15_o see_v that_o *_o none_n render_v evil_a for_o evil_a to_o any_o man_n but_o always_o that_o which_o be_v good_a pursue_v towards_o each_o other_o 1._o and_o towards_o al._n ✝_o verse_n 16_o always_o rejoice_v ✝_o verse_n 17_o probam_fw-la pray_v *_o without_o intermission_n ✝_o verse_n 18_o in_o all_o thing_n give_v thanks_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_v of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n in_o all_o you_o ✝_o verse_n 19_o the_o spirit_n extinguish_v not_o ✝_o verse_n 20_o prophecy_n despise_v not_o ✝_o verse_n 21_o but_o ″_o prove_v all_o thing_n hold_v that_o which_o be_v good_a ✝_o verse_n 22_o from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_a refrain_v yourselves_o ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n himself_o sanctify_v you_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n and_o body_n without_o blame_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 24_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v call_v you_o who_o also_o will_v do_v it_o ✝_o verse_n 25_o brethren_n pray_v for_o us._n ✝_o verse_n 26_o salute_v all_o the_o brethren_n in_o a_o holy_a kiss_n ✝_o verse_n 27_o i_o adjure_v you_o by_o our_o lord_n that_o this_o epistle_n be_v read_v to_o all_o the_o holy_a brethren_n ✝_o verse_n 28_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o you_o amen_n annotat_fw-la chap._n v._n 10_o but_o proous_a spirit_n though_o we_o may_v not_o extinguish_v the_o spirit_n nor_o contemmne_v the_o prophet_n yet_o we_o must_v beware_v we_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o geve_v to_o light_a credit_n to_o every_o one_o that_o vaunt_v himself_o of_o the_o spirit_n as_o arch-heretike_n ever_o do_v we_o must_v try_v th●●_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v guile_n ●_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o the_o second_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o have_v in_o the_o title_n as_o the_o first_o paul_n and_o silvanus_n and_o timothee_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o place_n to_o wit_n at_o corinth_n where_o they_o remain_v 11._o a_o year_n and_o six_o month_n &_o straight_o upon_o their_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o epistle_n first_o he_o thank_v god_n for_o their_o increase_n and_o perseuêrance_n comfort_v they_o again_o in_o those_o persecution_n and_o pray_v for_o their_o accomplisment_n second_o he_o assure_v they_o that_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v not_o at_o hand_n put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n what_o he_o tell_v they_o thereof_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n when_o he_o be_v present_a as_o therefore_o he_o bid_v they_o afterward_o 15._o to_o hold_v his_o tradition_n unwrite_v no_o less_o than_o the_o write_v to_o wit_n that_o all_o those_o persecution_n and_o heresy_n raise_v then_o and_o afterward_o against_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v but_o the_o mystery_n of_o antichrist_n and_o not_o antichrist_n himself_o but_o that_o there_o shall_v come_v at_o length_n a_o plain_a apostasy_n &_o they_o the_o whole_a before_o run_v mystery_n be_v once_o perfect_o wrought_v shall_v follow_v the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n himself_o in_o person_n as_o after_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n come_v himself_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n and_o then_o at_o length_n after_o all_o this_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n shall_v be_v as_o hand_n and_o not_o before_o whatsoever_o pretence_n of_o vision_n or_o of_o some_o speech_n of_o i_o say_v s._n paul_n any_o make_v to_o seduce_v you_o withal_o or_o of_o my_o former_a epistle_n or_o any_o other_o for_o which_o cause_n also_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o epistle_n he_o bid_v they_o to_o know_v his_o hand_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n in_o every_o epistle_n last_o he_o reque_v their_o prayer_n and_o require_v they_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o tradition_n namely_o that_o the_o poor_a which_o be_v able_a get_v their_o own_o live_n with_o work_v as_o he_o also_o give_v they_o example_n though_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v thereto_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o chap._n i._n he_o thank_v god_n for_o their_o increase_n in_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o constancy_n in_o persecution_n assure_v they_o that_o they_o merit_v thereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o their_o persecutor_n do_v damnation_n 11_o and_o also_o pray_v for_o their_o accomplishment_n verse_n 1_o paul_n and_o silvanus_n and_o timothee_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o in_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o grace_n to_o you_o and_o peace_n from_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ✝_o verse_n 3_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v thanks_n always_o to_o god_n for_o you_o brethren_n so_o as_o meet_v be_v because_o your_o faith_n increase_v exceed_o and_o the_o charity_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o abound_v towards_o each_o other_o ✝_o verse_n 4_o so_o that_o we_o ourselves_o also_o glory_n in_o you_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o your_o patience_n and_o faith_n in_o all_o your_o persecution_n and_o tribulation_n which_o you_o sustain_v ✝_o verse_n 5_o for_o a_o example_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o merit_n you_o may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d count_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o the_o which_o also_o you_o suffer_v ✝_o verse_n 6_o if_o yet_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o repay_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o vex_v you_o ✝_o verse_n 7_o and_o to_o you_o that_o be_v vex_v rest_n with_o we_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n from_o heaven_n with_o the_o angel_n of_o his_o power_n 16._o ✝_o verse_n 8_o in_o flame_n of_o fire_n give_v revenge_n to_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n &_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ✝_o verse_n 9_o who_o shall_v suffer_v eternal_a pain_n in_o destruction_n from_o the_o face_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n ✝_o verse_n 10_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v same_o glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v make_v marvellous_a in_o all_o they_o that_o have_v believe_v because_o our_o testimony_n concern_v you_o be_v credit_v in_o that_o day_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o wherein_o also_o we_o pray_v always_o for_o you_o that_o our_o god_n 〈◊〉_d make_v you_o worthy_a of_o his_o vocation_n and_o accomplish_v all_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o goodness_n &_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n in_o power_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o that_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o you_o and_o you_o in_o he_o according_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n chap._n ii_o he_o require_v they_o in_o no_o case_n to_o think_v that_o domesday_n be_v at_o hand_n ●_o repeat_n unto_o they_o that_o there_o must_v before_o come_v first_o a_o revolt_n second_o the_o revelation_n also_o of_o antichrist_n himself_o in_o person_n and_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o permit_v any_o god_n to_o be_v worship_v but_o only_o himself_o that_o also_o with_o his_o lie_v wonder_v he_o shall_v win_v to_o he_o the_o incredulous_a jew_n but_o christ_n shall_v come_v then_o immediate_o in_o majesty_n and_o destroy_v he_o and_o he_o 13_o therefore_o he_o thank_v god_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o 15_o and_o bid_v they_o stick_v to_o hi●_n tradition_n both_o write_v and_o unwrite_v &_o pray_v god_n to_o confirm_v they_o verse_n 1_o and_o we_o desire_v you_o advent_a brethren_z by_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o our_o congregation_n into_o he_o ✝_o verse_n two_o that_o you_o be_v not_o easy_o move_v from_o your_o sense_n nor_o be_v terrify_v neither_o by_o spirit_n nor_o by_o word_n nor_o by_o epistle_n as_o send_v by_o we_o ″_o as_o though_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n ✝_o verse_n 3_o let_v no_o man_n seduce_v you_o by_o any_o mean_n for_o ″_o unless_o there_o come_v 〈◊〉_d a_o revolt_n first_o and_z ″_o
antichrist_n or_o before_o shall_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o same_o but_o for_o that_o near_a to_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v like_a to_o be_v a_o great_a revolt_n of_o kingdom_n people_n and_o province_n from_o the_o open_a external_a obedience_n and_o communion_n thereof_o which_o revolt_n have_v be_v begin_v and_o continue_v by_o heretic_n of_o diverse_a age_n resist_v &_o hate_v the_o seat_n of_o peter_n which_o they_o call_v cathedram_fw-la pestilentia_fw-la 51._o the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n *_o in_o s._n augustine_n day_n because_o it_o be_v christ_n fort_n erect_v against_o hell_n gate_n and_o all_o heretic_n and_o be_v now_o wonderful_o increase_v by_o these_o of_o our_o day_n the_o next_o precursor_n of_o antichrist_n as_o it_o may_v seem_v shall_v be_v full_o achieve_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o antichrist_n himself_o though_o even_o then_o also_o when_o for_o the_o few_o day_n of_o antichristes_n reign_n the_o external_a state_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o public_a intercourse_n of_o the_o faithful_a with_o the_o same_o may_v cease_v yet_o the_o due_a honour_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o christian_n towards_o it_o and_o communion_n in_o hart_n with_o it_o and_o practice_v thereof_o in_o secret_a and_o open_a confess_v thereof_o if_o occasion_n require_v shall_v not_o cease_v no_o more_o than_o it_o do_v now_o in_o the_o christian_n of_o cypress_n and_o other_o place_n where_o open_a intercourse_n be_v forbid_v this_o be_v certain_a and_o wonderful_a in_o all_o wise_a man_n eye_n scandal_n and_o must_v needs_o be_v of_o god_n providence_n &_o a_o singular_a prerogative_n that_o this_o seat_n of_o peter_n stand_v when_o all_o other_o apostolic_a see_v be_v go_v that_o it_o stand_v there_o for_o certain_a age_n together_o with_o the_o secular_a seat_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o the_o pope_n stand_v without_o wealth_n power_n or_o humane_a defence_n the_o emperor_n know_v wit_v and_o seek_v to_o destroy_v they_o and_o put_v to_o the_o sword_n above_o thirty_o of_o they_o one_o after_o a_o other_o yea_o and_o be_v as_o much_o afraid_a of_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v amuli_fw-la imperij_fw-la competitor_n of_o their_o empire_n as_o s._n cyprian_n note_v epist_n 52_o ad_fw-la antonianum_fw-la num_fw-la 3_o of_o s._n cornelius_n pope_n in_o his_o day_n and_o decius_n then_o emperor_n again_o that_o the_o emperor_n afterward_o yield_v up_o the_o city_n unto_o they_o continue_v for_o all_o that_o in_o the_o imperial_a dignity_n still_o that_o the_o successor_n of_o those_o that_o persecute_v they_o lay_v down_o their_o crown_n before_o their_o seat_n and_o sepulcre_n honour_v the_o very_a memory_n and_o relic_n of_o the_o poor_a man_n who_o their_o predecessor_n kill_v that_o now_o well_o near_o these_o 1600_o year_n this_o seat_n stand_v as_o at_o the_o begin_n in_o continual_a misery_n so_o now_o of_o long_a time_n for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o prosperity_n without_o all_o mutation_n in_o effect_n as_o no_o other_o kingdom_n or_o state_n in_o the_o world_n have_v do_v every_o one_o of_o they_o in_o the_o say_a space_n be_v manifold_o alter_v it_o stand_v we_o say_v all_o this_o while_n to_o use_v s._n augustine_n word_n de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 17._o frustra_fw-la circumlatrantibus_fw-la haereticis_fw-la the_o heretic_n in_o vain_a bark_n about_o it_o not_o the_o first_o heathen_a emperor_n not_o the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n not_o the_o turk_n not_o any_o sack_n or_o massacre_n by_o alaricus_n gensericus_fw-la attila_n borbon_n and_o other_o not_o the_o emulation_n of_o secular_a prince_n be_v they_o king_n or_o emperor_n not_o the_o pope_n own_o division_n among_o themselves_o and_o manifold_a difficulty_n and_o danger_n in_o their_o election_n not_o the_o great_a vice_n which_o have_v be_v note_v in_o some_o of_o their_o person_n no●_n all_o these_o nor_o any_o other_o endeavour_n or_o scandal_n can_v yet_o prevail_v against_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n nor_o be_v ever_o like_a to_o prevail_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n draw_v near_o at_o which_o time_n this_o revolt_n here_o speak_v of_o by_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o be_v say_v before_o and_o more_o shall_v be_v say_v in_o the_o annotation_n next_o follow_a ●_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n antichrist_n there_o be_v many_o even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o we_o see_v by_o the_o 4_o chapter_n of_o s._n johns_n first_o epistle_n and_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o be_v forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n and_o for_o impugn_v christ_n truth_n and_o church_n be_v call_v antichriste_n whether_o they_o do_v it_o by_o force_n and_o open_a persecution_n as_o nero_n and_o other_o either_o heathen_a or_o heretical_a emperor_n do_v or_o by_o false_a teach_n and_o other_o deceit_n as_o the_o heretic_n of_o all_o age_n in_o which_o common_a and_o vulgar_a acception_n s._n hierom_n say_v all_o belong_v to_o antichrist_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o damasus_n then_o pope_n of_o rome_n man_n hiero._n ep_v 57_o add_v damas_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n all_o that_o have_v new_a name_n after_o the_o peculiar_a call_n of_o heretic_n as_o arian_n donatist_n and_o as_o we_o say_v now_o caluiniste_n zwinglians_n etc._n etc._n all_o such_o say_v he_o be_v antichristes_n dial._n count_n lucifer_n c._n 9_o yea_o these_o late_a of_o our_o time_n much_o more_o than_o any_o of_o the_o former_a for_o diverse_a cause_n which_o shall_v afterward_o be_v set_v down_o nevertheless_o they_o nor_o none_o of_o they_o be_v that_o great_a adversary_n enemy_n and_o impugner_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v by_o a_o peculiar_a distinction_n and_o special_a signification_n name_v the_o antichrist_n 1_o io._n 2._o and_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n 〈◊〉_d the_o adversary_n describe_v here_o &_o else_o where_o to_o oppose_v himself_o direct_o against_o god_n &_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 〈◊〉_d the_o heathen_a emperor_n be_v many_o turk_n be_v many_o heretic_n have_v be_v and_o now_o be_v many_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o be_v that_o one_o great_a antichrist_n which_o here_o be_v speak_v of_o and_o which_o by_o the_o article_n always_o add_v in_o the_o greek_a be_v signify_v to_o be_v one_o special_a and_o singular_a man_n 〈◊〉_d as_o his_o peculiar_a &_o direct_a opposition_n to_o christ_n person_n in_o the_o 5_o chapter_n of_o s._n johns_n gospel_n v._n 43_o the_o insinuation_n of_o the_o particular_a stock_n and_o tribe_n whereof_o he_o shall_v be_v bear_v to_o wit_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o of_o they_o he_o shall_v be_v receive_v as_o their_o massias_n io._n 5._o v._n 43._o and_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan._n 17._o ire●_n li._n 5._o hieron_n come_v in_o c._n 11_o dan._n august_n q._n in_o jos_n q._n 22_o 〈◊〉_d the_o note_n of_o his_o proper_a name_n apoc._n 13_o the_o time_n of_o his_o appear_v so_o near_o the_o world_n end_n his_o short_a reign_n his_o singular_a waste_v and_o destruction_n of_o god_n honour_n and_o all_o religion_n his_o feign_a miracle_n the_o figure_n of_o he_o in_o the_o prophet_n and_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a &_o old_a testament_n all_o these_o &_o many_o other_o argument_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v but_o one_o special_a notorious_a adversary_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n unto_o who_o all_o other_o persecutor_n heretic_n atheist_n and_o wicked_a enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n be_v but_o member_n and_o servant_n and_o this_o be_v the_o most_o common_a sentence_n also_o of_o all_o ancient_a father_n only_o heretic_n make_v no_o doubt_n but_o antichrist_n be_v a_o whole_a order_n or_o succession_n of_o man_n which_o they_o hold_v against_o the_o former_a evident_a scripture_n and_o reason_n only_o to_o establish_v their_o foolish_a and_o wicked_a paradox_n that_o christ_n chief_a minister_n be_v antichrist_n cap._n yea_o the_o whole_a order_n wherein_o beza_n special_o prick_v so_o high_a that_o he_o make_v antichrist_n even_o this_o great_a antichrist_n to_o have_v be_v in_o s._n paul_n day_n day_n though_o he_o be_v not_o open_a to_o the_o world_n who_o it_o shall_v be_v except_o he_o mean_v s._n peter_n because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o order_n of_o pope_n god_n know_v and_o sure_o it_o be_v except_o he_o be_v antichrist_n neither_o the_o whole_a order_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o order_n can_v be_v antichrist_n be_v all_o his_o lawful_a successor_n both_o in_o dignity_n and_o also_o in_o truth_n of_o christ_n religion_n neither_o can_v all_o the_o heretic_n alive_a prove_v that_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o use_v any_o other_o regiment_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o church_n or_o force_v the_o people_n to_o any_o other_o faith_n or_o worship_n of_o god_n than_o peter_n himself_o do_v preach_v and_o
candlestick_n of_o the_o world_n no_o doubt_n to_o signfie_v that_o christ_n preserve_v the_o truth_n only_o in_o and_o by_o the_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o christ_n truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o 15_o in_o corner_n or_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n but_o at_o the_o bishop_n hand_n and_o *_o upon_o the_o candlestick_n which_o shine_v to_o all_o in_o the_o house_n 20._o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n protector_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v s._n michael_n for_o her_o keeper_n and_o protector_n and_o therefore_o keep_v his_o holy_a day_n only_o by_o name_n among_o all_o angel_n and_o as_o earthly_a kingdom_n have_v their_o special_a angel_n protector_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o 10_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n so_o much_o more_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o christendom_n angel_n see_v s._n hierom_n in_o 34_o ezech._n but_o of_o those_o angel_n it_o be_v not_o here_o mean_v as_o be_v manifest_a and_o therefore_o angel_n here_o must_v needs_o signify_v the_o priest_n or_o bishop_n special_o of_o the_o church_n here_o and_o in_o they_o all_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a &_o of_o every_o particular_a church_n of_o christendom_n they_o be_v call_v angel_n for_o that_o they_o be_v god_n messenger_n to_o we_o interpreter_n of_o he_o will_v our_o keeper_n and_o director_n in_o religion_n our_o intercessor_n the_o carrier_n and_o offerer_n of_o our_o prayer_n to_o he_o 7._o and_o mediator_n unto_o he_o under_o christ_n and_o for_o these_o cause_n and_o for_o their_o great_a digni●ie_n they_o be_v here_o and_o in_o *_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n call_v angel_n chap._n ii_o he_o be_v command_v to_o write_v diverse_a thing_n to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesiu_n s●yrna_n pergamus_n and_o thyatira_n praise_v they_o that_o have_v not_o admit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o heretic_n call_v nicola●ta_n 22_o and_o call_v other_o by_o threat_n unto_o penance_n 26_o and_o promise_v reward_n to_o he_o that_o manful_o overcom_v verse_n 1_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n write_v thus_o say_v he_o which_o ″_o hold_v the_o seven_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n which_o walk_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o seven_o candlestick_n of_o gold_n ✝_o verse_n 2_o i_o know_v ″_o thy_o work_n and_o labour_n and_o thy_o patience_n and_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o bear_v evil_a man_n and_o have_v try_v they_o which_o say_v themselves_o to_o be_v apostle_n and_o be_v not_o and_o have_v find_v they_o liar_n ✝_o verse_n 3_o and_o thou_o have_v patience_n and_o have_v bear_v for_o my_o name_n and_o have_v not_o faint_v ✝_o verse_n 4_o but_o i_o have_v against_o thou_o a_o few_o thing_n because_o it_o thou_o have_v leave_v thy_o first_o charity_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o be_v mindful_a therefore_o from_o whence_o thou_o be_v fall_v and_o do_v penance_n and_o do_v the_o first_o work_n but_o if_o not_o i_o come_v to_o thou_o and_z ″_o will_v move_v thy_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n unless_o thou_o do_v penance_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o but_o this_o thou_o have_v ″_o because_o thou_o hate_v the_o fact_n ″_o of_o the_o nicolaïte_n which_o i_o also_o hate_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n let_v he_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n to_o he_o that_o overcom_v i_o will_v give_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o the_o paradise_n of_o my_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n write_v thus_o say_v *_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o 17._o who_o be_v dead_a and_o live_v ✝_o verse_n 9_o i_o know_v thy_o tribulation_n and_o thy_o faith_n poverty_n but_o thou_o be_v scotfree_a and_o thou_o be_v blaspheme_v of_o they_o that_o say_v themselves_o to_o be_v jew_n and_o be_v not_o but_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n ✝_o verse_n 10_o fear_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o thou_o shall_v suffer_v behold_v the_o devil_n will_v send_v some_o of_o you_o into_o prison_n that_o you_o may_v be_v try_v and_o you_o shall_v have_v tribulation_n ten_o day_n be_v thou_o faithful_a until_o death_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o martyrdom_n the_o crown_n of_o life_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n let_v he_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v shall_v not_o be_v hurt_v of_o the_o man_n second_o death_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o pergamus_n write_v thus_o say_v he_o that_o have_v the_o sharp_a two_o edge_a sword_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o i_o know_v where_o thou_o dwell_v where_o the_o seat_n of_o satan_n be_v and_o thou_o hold_v my_o name_n and_o have_v not_o deny_v my_o faith_n and_o in_o those_o day_n antipas_n my_o faithful_a witness_n who_o be_v slay_v among_o you_o commend_v where_o satan_n dwell_v ✝_o verse_n 14_o but_o i_o have_v against_o thou_o a_o few_o thing_n because_o thou_o have_v there_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o balaam_n 2._o who_o teach_v balac_n ″_o to_o cast_v a_o scandal_n before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o eat_v and_o commit_v fornication_n ✝_o verse_n 15_o so_o have_v thou_o also_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o nicolaïte_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v penance_n if_o not_o i_o will_v come_v to_o thou_o quick_o and_o will_v fight_v against_o they_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o my_o mouth_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n let_v he_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n to_o he_o that_o overcom_v i_o will_v give_v the_o hide_a manna_n and_o will_v give_v he_o a_o white_a calcul●_n counter_n and_o in_o the_o counter_a a_o new_a name_n write_v which_o no_o man_n know_v but_o he_o that_o receive_v it_o ✝_o verse_n 18_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o thyatíra_n write_v thus_o say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o have_v eye_n as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o his_o foot_n like_v to_o latten_n ✝_o verse_n 19_o i_o know_v thy_o other_o work_n and_o faith_n and_o thy_o charity_n and_o ministry_n and_o thy_o patience_n and_o thy_o last_o work_n more_o than_o the_o former_a ✝_o verse_n 20_o but_o i_o have_v against_o thou_o a_o few_o thing_n because_o thou_o permit_v ″_o the_o woman_n *_o jezabel_n 18._o who_o call_v herself_o a_o prophetess_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o seduce_v my_o servant_n to_o fornicate_v and_o to_o eat_v of_o thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n ✝_o verse_n 21_o and_o i_o give_v she_o a_o time_n that_o she_o may_v do_v penance_n and_o ″_o she_o will_v not_o repent_v from_o her_o fornication_n ✝_o verse_n 22_o behold_v i_o will_v cast_v she_o into_o a_o bed_n and_o ″_o they_o that_o commit_v advoutrie_n with_o she_o shall_v be_v in_o very_o great_a tribulation_n unless_o they_o do_v penance_n from_o their_o work_n ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o her_o child_n i_o will_v kill_v unto_o death_n and_o all_o the_o church_n shall_v know_v *_o that_o i_o be_o he_o that_o search_v the_o reins_n and_o heart_n 16._o and_o i_o will_v give_v to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o charity_n according_a to_o his_o work_n 10_o ✝_o verse_n 24_o but_o i_o say_v to_o you_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v at_o thyatira_n whosoever_o have_v not_o this_o doctrine_n 20._o which_o have_v not_o know_v the_o depth_n depth_n '_o of_o satan_n as_o they_o say_v i_o will_v not_o cast_v upon_o you_o a_o other_o weight_n ✝_o verse_n 25_o yet_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hold_v till_o i_o come_v ✝_o verse_n 26_o and_o he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v and_o keep_v my_o work_n unto_o the_o end_n ″_o i_o will_v give_v he_o power_n over_o the_o nation_n ✝_o verse_n 27_o and_o *_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n 9_o and_o as_o the_o vessel_n of_o a_o potter_n shall_v they_o be_v break_v ✝_o verse_n 28_o himself_o as_o i_o also_o have_v receive_v of_o my_o father_n and_o i_o will_v give_v he_o the_o morning_n star_n ✝_o verse_n 29_o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n let_v he_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n annotation_n chap._n ii_o 1._o hold_v the_o seven_o church_n much_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o christ_n have_v such_o care_n over_o the_o church_n and_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o that_o he_o be_v say_v here_o to_o bear_v they_o up_o in_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o they_o no_o doubt_n to_o uphold_v and_o preserve_v they_o and_o to_o guide_v they_o in_o all_o truth_n 2._o thy_o work_n labour_n patience_n etc._n etc._n thing_n require_v in_o a_o bishop_n first_o good_a work_n and_o great_a patience_n in_o tribulation_n bishop_n next_o zeal_n and_o sharp_a discipline_n towards_o offender_n
of_o the_o pagan_a god_n then_o be_v it_o babylon_n when_o s._n john_n write_v this_o and_o then_o be_v nero_n and_o the_o rest_n figure_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o city_n the_o resemblance_n of_o the_o principal_a place_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v reign_v in_o about_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o world_n now_o to_o apply_v that_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o apostolic_a see_v either_o now_o or_o then_o which_o be_v speak_v only_o of_o the_o terrene_a state_n of_o that_o city_n as_o it_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o peter_n when_o it_o do_v slay_v above_o 30_o pope_n christ_n vicar_n one_o after_o a_o other_o &_o endeavour_v to_o destroy_v the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v most_o blasphemous_a and_o foolish_a the_o church_n in_o rome_n be_v one_o thing_n babylon_n &_o babylon_n in_o rome_n a_o other_o thing_n peter_n sit_v in_o rome_n and_o nero_n sit_v in_o rome_n but_o peter_n as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nero_n as_o in_o the_o babylon_n of_o rome_n which_o distinction_n the_o heretic_n may_v have_v learn_v by_o s._n peter_n himself_o ep_v 1._o chap._n 5._o writing_n thus_o the_o church_n salute_v you_o that_o be_v in_o babylon_n coëlect_n so_o that_o the_o church_n and_o the_o very_a choose_a church_n be_v in_o rome_n when_o rome_n be_v babylon_n whereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o whether_o babylon_n or_o the_o great_a whore_n do_v here_o signify_v rome_n or_o no_o yet_o it_o can_v not_o signify_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v now_o and_o ever_o be_v differ_v from_o the_o terrene_a empire_n of_o the_o same_o and_o if_o as_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n nero_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o persecute_v emperor_n which_o be_v figure_n of_o antichrist_n do_v principal_o sit_v in_o rome_n so_o also_o the_o great_a antichrist_n shall_v have_v his_o seat_n there_o as_o it_o may_v well_o be_v though_o other_o think_v that_o jerusalem_n rather_o shall_v be_v his_o principal_a city_n yet_o even_o then_o shall_v neither_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v antichrist_n but_o shall_v be_v persecute_v by_o antichrist_n and_o drive_v out_o of_o rome_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o to_o christ_n vicar_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o will_v bear_v as_o much_o good_a will_v as_o the_o protestant_n now_o do_v and_o he_o shall_v have_v more_o power_n to_o persecute_v he_o and_o the_o church_n than_o they_o have_v s._n hierom_n epist_n 17._o c._n 7._o to_o marcelia_n to_o draw_v she_o out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n warn_v she_o of_o the_o manifold_a allurement_n to_o sin_n and_o ill_a life_n that_o be_v in_o so_o great_a and_o populous_a a_o city_n allude_v at_o length_n to_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v babylon_n and_o the_o purple_a whore_n but_o straight_o way_n lest_o some_o naughty_a person_n may_v think_v he_o mean_v that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o society_n of_o the_o wicked_a only_o he_o add_v there_o be_v there_o in_o deed_n the_o holy_a church_n there_o be_v the_o triumphans_fw-la monument_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n there_o be_v the_o true_a confession_n of_o christ_n 1._o there_o be_v the_o faith_n praise_v *_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o gentility_n tread_v under_o foot_n the_o name_n of_o christian_n daily_o advance_v itself_o on_o high_a whereby_o you_o see_v that_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v speak_v or_o interpret_v of_o rome_n out_o of_o this_o word_n babylon_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o the_o terrene_a state_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o say_v holy_a doctor_n li._n 2._o advers_a jovinian_a c._n 19_o signify_v that_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n there_o have_v wipe_v away_o the_o blasphemy_n write_v in_o the_o forehead_n of_o her_o former_a iniquity_n but_o of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o old_a state_n and_o dominion_n of_o the_o heathen_a there_o for_o which_o it_o be_v resemble_v to_o antichrist_n and_o the_o priestly_a state_n which_o now_o it_o have_v read_v a_o notable_a place_n in_o s._n leo_n serm_n 1_o in_o natali_fw-la petri_n &_o pauli_n 5._o mystery_n s._n paul_n call_v this_o secret_a and_o close_o work_v of_o abomination_n mystery_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n 2._o thessaly_n 2._o and_o it_o be_v call_v a_o little_a after_o in_o this_o chapter_n vers_n 7._o the_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o it_o be_v also_o the_o mark_n of_o reprobation_n and_o damnation_n 6._o drunken_a of_o the_o blood_n saint_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o woman_n signify_v the_o whole_a corpse_n of_o all_o the_o persecutor_n that_o have_v and_o shall_v shede_v so_o much_o blood_n of_o the_o just_a of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o other_o martyr_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n the_o protestant_n foolish_o expound_v it_o of_o rome_n for_o that_o there_o they_o put_v heretic_n to_o death_n and_o allow_v of_o their_o punishment_n in_o other_o country_n but_o their_o blood_n be_v not_o call_v the_o blood_n of_o saint_n saint_n no_o more_o than_o the_o blood_n of_o thief_n mankiller_n and_o other_o malefactor_n for_o the_o shed_v of_o which_o by_o order_n of_o justice_n no_o commonwealth_n shall_v answer_n 9_o seven_o hill_n the_o angel_n himself_o here_o expound_v these_o 7_o hill_n to_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o 7_o head_n and_o the_o 7_o king_n &_o yet_o the_o heretic_n blind_v exceed_o with_o malice_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o mad_a to_o take_v they_o for_o the_o seven_o hill_n literal_o upon_o which_o in_o old_a time_n rome_n do_v stand_v that_o so_o they_o may_v make_v the_o unlearned_a believe_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n otherwise_o but_o if_o they_o have_v any_o consideration_n they_o may_v mark_v that_o the_o prophet_n vision_n here_o be_v most_o of_o they_o by_o seven_o whether_o he_o talk_v of_o head_n horn_n candlestick_n church_n king_n hill_n or_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o he_o allude_v not_o to_o the_o hill_n because_o they_o be_v just_a seven_o but_o that_o seven_o be_v a_o mystical_a number_n as_o sometime_o ten_o be_v signify_v universal_o all_o of_o that_o sort_n whereof_o he_o speak_v as_o that_o the_o seven_o head_n hill_n or_o kingdom_n which_o be_v here_o all_o one_o shall_v be_v all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n that_o persecute_v the_o christian_n be_v head_n and_o mountain_n for_o their_o height_n in_o dignity_n above_o other_o and_o some_o take_v it_o that_o there_o be_v seven_o special_a empire_n kingdom_n or_o state_n that_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a persecutor_n of_o god_n people_n as_o of_o egypt_n hanaan_n babylon_n the_o persian_n and_o greek_n which_o be_v five-sixt_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o once_o persecute_v most_o of_o all_o other_o and_o which_o as_o the_o apostle_n here_o say_v yet_o be_v or_o stand_v but_o the_o seven_o then_o when_o s._n john_n write_v this_o be_v not_o come_v neither_o be_v yet_o come_v in_o our_o day_n which_o be_v antichrist_n state_n which_o shall_v not_o come_v so_o long_o as_o the_o empire_n of_o rome_n stand_v as_o s._n paul_n do_v prophecy_n 2_o thessa●_n 2._o 13._o the_o same_o be_v the_o eight_o beast_n the_o beast_n itself_o be_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o these_o wicked_a persecutor_n though_o it_o consist_v of_o the_o foresay_a seven_o yet_o for_o that_o the_o malice_n of_o all_o be_v complete_a in_o it_o may_v be_v call_v the_o eight_o or_o antichrist_n himself_o though_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o yet_o for_o his_o extraordinary_a wickedness_n shall_v be_v count_v the_o odd_a persecutor_n or_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o other_o &_o therefore_o be_v name_v the_o eight_o some_o take_v this_o beast_n call_v the_o eight_o to_o be_v the_o devil_n 18._o the_o great_a city_n if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o any_o one_o city_n and_o not_o of_o the_o universal_a society_n of_o the_o reprobate_n which_o be_v the_o city_n of_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o church_n &_o the_o universal_a fellowship_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v call_v the_o city_n of_o god_n it_o be_v most_o like_a to_o be_v old_a rome_n babylon_n as_o some_o of_o the_o greek_n expound_v it_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o emperor_n till_o constantine_n day_n who_o make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o persecution_n for_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a roman_a empire_n christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n first_o and_o afterward_o the_o two_o chief_a apostle_n &_o the_o pope_n their_o successor_n and_o infinite_a catholic_a man_n through_o out_o the_o world_n by_o lesser_a king_n which_o then_o be_v subject_a to_o rome_n all_o which_o antichristian_a persecution_n cease_v when_o
translation_n to_o maintain_v caluin_n horrible_a blasphemy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d flac._n illyr_n upon_o this_o place_n caluins_n blasphemy_n that_o christ_n suffer_v hell_n pain_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o his_o death_n otherwise_o be_v insufficient_a christ_n yield_v up_o the_o ghost_n accomplish_v our_o redemption_n io._n 19_o 30_o christ_n passion_n sufficient_a for_o all_o but_o profitable_a to_o they_o only_o which_o obey_v not_o by_o faith_n only_o but_o by_o do_v as_o he_o and_o his_o church_n command_v the_o apostle_n omit_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n as_o a_o mystery_n then_o to_o deep_a for_o the_o jew_n capacity_n heb._n 10_o 26._o 26._o it_o be_v evident_a by_o these_o word_n against_o the_o novatians_n and_o the_o caluinist_n that_o s._n paul_n mean_v not_o precise_o that_o they_o have_v do_v or_o can_v do_v any_o such_o sin_n whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v put_v out_o of_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o be_v sure_a of_o damnation_n during_o their_o life_n gen._n 22_o 16._o the_o apostle_n form_n of_o catechism_n and_o the_o point_n thereof_o the_o novatians_n as_o all_o heretic_n make_v scripture_n the_o ground_n of_o their_o heresy_n heresy_n ambr._n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la li._n 2._o c._n 2._o other_o place_n make_v no_o more_o for_o the_o protestant_n then_o this_o do_v for_o novatus_fw-la caluins_n heresy_n upon_o this_o place_n worse_o than_o the_o novatians_n ambr._n loco_fw-la cit_fw-la &_o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la heb._n chry._n ho._n 9_o in_o c._n 6_o ad_fw-la hebr._n the_o father_n exposition_n of_o this_o place_n the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v ready_a for_o all_o sinner_n whatsoever_o hiero._n ep_v 8_o ad_fw-la demetriad_n c._n 6._o god_n justice_n in_o reward_v meritorious_a work_n gen._n 14_o 18._o 18._o when_o the_o father_n &_o catholic_a expositor_n pike_n out_o allegory_n and_o mystery_n out_o of_o the_o name_n of_o man_n the_o protestant_n not_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o the_o scripture_n be_v give_v deride_v their_o holy_a labour_n in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o same_o but_o the_o apostle_n find_v high_a mystery_n in_o the_o very_a name_n of_o person_n and_o place_n as_o you_o see_v nu._n 18_o 21._o deu._n 18_o 1._o jos_n 14_o 4._o 4._o the_o tithe_n give_v to_o melchisedech_n be_v not_o give_v as_o to_o a_o mere_a mortal_a man_n as_o all_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n &_o aaron_n order_n be_v but_o as_o to_o one_o represent_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o now_o live_v and_o reign_v and_o hold_v his_o priesthood_n &_o the_o function_n thereof_o for_o ever_o ever_o priesthood_n ps_n 109_o 4._o ps_n 100l_n 4._o the_o epistle_n for_o a_o confessor_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n bishop_n they_o that_o go_v go_v christ_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n pray_v for_o we_o &_o continual_o represent_v his_o former_a passion_n and_o merit_n to_o god_n the_o father_n leu._n 9_o 7._o 16_o 6._o the_o resemblance_n of_o melchisedec_n to_o christ_n in_o many_o point_n by_o the_o sundry_a excellency_n of_o melchisedeck●_n priesthood_n be_v prove_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o priesthood_n &_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o receive_v tithe_n of_o abraham_n &_o consequent_o of_o levi_n &_o aaron_n tithe_n he_o bless_a abraham_n bless_v a_o great_a preeminence_n special_o in_o priest_n the_o full_a accomplishment_n of_o man_n redemption_n be_v not_o by_o aaron_n but_o by_o melchisedecks_n priesthood_n the_o apostle_n to_o consute_n the_o jew_n false_a persuasion_n of_o aaron_n priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n speak_v altogether_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n no_o lawful_a state_n of_o people_n with_o out_o a_o external_a priesthood_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d external_n priesthood_n necessary_a for_o the_o new_a testament_n external_n sacrifice_n also_o necessary_a for_o the_o same_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o old_a priesthood_n &_o sacrifice_n must_v needs_o be_v into_o the_o say_a priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n how_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n for_o eve_n christ_n eternal_a priesthood_n consist_v in_o the_o perpetual_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n in_o the_o church_n the_o protestant_n cavil_v upon_o particle_n against_o melchisedecks_n sacrifice_n &_o priesthood_n direct_o against_o the_o apostle_n christ_n eternal_a priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o father_n ep._n 126._o 126._o that_o be_v from_z adam_z to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n represent_v by_o sacrifice_n the_o old_a commandment_n and_o the_o new_a maundy_n thursday_n why_o so_o call_v the_o introduction_n of_o a_o new_a priesthood_n the_o eternity_n of_o the_o new_a priesthood_n confirm_v by_o the_o father_n oath_n &_o christ_n passion_n by_o the_o comparison_n of_o many_o priest_n &_o one_o be_v not_o mean_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n esa_n c._n 61._o 61._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o absolute_a sacrifice_n of_o eternal_a redemption_n can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o those_o many_o aaronical_a priest_n but_o by_o one_o only_a christ_n jesus_n who_o live_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o have_v no_o successor_n and_o as_o chief_a priest_n work_v and_o concur_v with_o all_o priest_n in_o their_o priestly_a function_n function_n christ_n live_v and_o reign_v in_o heaven_n continue_v his_o priestly_a function_n still_o and_o be_v minister_v not_o of_o moses_n sancta_fw-la &_o tabernacle_n but_o of_o his_o own_o body_n &_o blood_n which_o be_v the_o true_a holies_n and_o tabernacle_n not_o form_v by_o man_n but_o by_o god_n own_o hand_n hand_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d exo_n 25_o 9_o 40._o 40._o the_o promise_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o law_n be_v temporal_a but_o the_o promise_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n be_v eternal_a hier._n 31_o 31._o christ_n priesthood_n &_o sacrifice_n be_v external_a not_o spiritual_a only_o only_o beza_n in_o schol_a test_n gracolat_a in_o c._n 7_o heb._n num_fw-la 8._o how_o christ_n body_n be_v make_v fit_a to_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o eat_v perpetual_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n grace_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o new_a testament_n or_o covenant_n between_o god_n &_o man_n luc._n 〈◊〉_d scripture_n abuse_v for_o fantastical_a inspiration_n act._n 2._o io._n 14._o ●_o 12._o 12._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d exo._n 25._o 26_o 1._o 36._o the_o epistle_n upon_o imber_n saturday_n in_o septemb_n 3_o reg._n 8._o 2_o par._n 5._o exo._n 25_o 22._o exo_fw-la 30_o 10._o leu._n 16_o 2._o 30._o 30._o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n be_v not_o open_a before_o christ_n passion_n &_o therefore_o the_o patriarch_n and_o good_a man_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v in_o some_o other_o place_n of_o rest_n until_o then_o then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o thing_n do_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o priesthood_n be_v figure_n of_o christ_n action_n action_n the_o epistle_n upon_o passion_n sunday_n leu._n 9_o 8_o 16_o 6._o 14_o nu._n 19_o 19_o shall_v shall_v cleanse_v gal._n 3_o 15_o 15_o here_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v not_o all_o necessary_a tite_n or_o truth_n when_o neither_o the_o place_n to_o which_o the_o apostle_n allude_v nor_o any_o other_o mention_v half_o these_o ceremony_n but_o he_o have_v they_o by_o tradition_n exo._n 24._o 8._o 8._o by_o this_o word_n which_o signify_v to_o empty_a or_o draw_v out_o even_o to_o the_o botom_n be_v declare_v the_o plentiful_a and_o perfect_a redemption_n of_o sin_n by_o christ_n christ_n ad_fw-la exhaurienda_fw-la peccata_fw-la relic_n they_o continue_v without_o putrefaction_n the_o holy_a cross_n the_o sepulcher_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n ep_v 17._o c._n 5._o image_n in_o salomon_n temple_n command_v by_o god_n sacrifice_v not_o take_v away_o by_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o change_v into_o a_o better_a one_o only_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_a the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n and_o one_o only_a priest_n christ_n the_o redeem_v thereof_o li._n de_fw-fr sp._n &_o light_v c._n 11._o the_o apostle_n disputation_n be_v only_o against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o jew_n concern_v their_o sacrifice_n and_o priest_n the_o protestant_n apply_v it_o against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n &_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n caluins_n argument_n against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n make_v no_o less_o against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law._n the_o correspondence_n of_o word_n in_o dedicate_a both_o testament_n prove_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o blood_n in_o the_o chalice_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v figure_n of_o the_o now_o in_o the_o new_a be_v resemblance_n of_o the_o heavenly_a state_n christ_n once_o offer_v in_o bloody_a sort_n but_o unblouddy_o
of_o galilee_n day_n see_v two_o brethren_n 1._o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n &_o his_o brother_n cast_v a_o net_n into_o the_o sea_n for_o they_o be_v fisher_n ✝_o verse_n 19_o &_o he_o say_v to_o they_o come_v you_o after_o i_o and_o i_o will_v make_v you_o to_o be_v fisher_n of_o man_n ✝_o verse_n 20_o but_o they_o incontinent_a leave_v the_o net_n follow_v he_o 19_o ✝_o verse_n 21_o and_o go_v forward_o from_o thence_o he_o see_v *_o other_o two_o brethren_n 10._o james_n of_o zebedee_n &_o john_n his_o brother_n in_o a_o ship_n with_o zebedee_n their_o father_n repair_v their_o net_n and_o he_o call_v they_o ✝_o verse_n 22_o and_o they_o forthwith_v leave_v their_o net_n &_o father_n and_o follow_v he_o ⊢_o ✝_o verse_n 23_o and_o jesus_n go_v round_o about_o all_o galilee_n teach_v in_o their_o synagogs_n &_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o ″healing_v every_o malady_n and_o every_o infirmity_n in_o the_o people_n ✝_o verse_n 24_o and_o the_o bruit_n of_o he_o go_v into_o all_o syria_n and_o they_o present_v to_o he_o all_o that_o be_v ill_a at_o ease_n diverse_o take_v with_o disease_n and_o torment_n and_o such_o as_o be_v possess_v and_o lunatike_n and_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n and_o he_o cure_v they_o ✝_o verse_n 25_o and_o much_o people_n follow_v he_o from_o galilee_n and_o decapolis_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o beyond_o jordan_n annotation_n chap._n four_o 1._o desert_n as_o john_n the_o baptist_n so_o our_o saviour_n by_o go_v into_o the_o desert_n and_o there_o live_v in_o contemplation_n even_o among_o brute_n beast_n eremites_fw-la and_o subject_a to_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o our_o sin_n geve_v a_o warrant_n and_o example_n to_o such_o holy_a man_n as_o have_v live_v in_o wilderness_n for_o penance_n and_o contemplation_n call_v eremites_n 2._o fast_v fourtis_fw-la day_n elias_n and_o moses_n say_v s._n hierom_n by_o the_o fast_o of_o 40_o day_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o familiarity_n of_o god_n lent-fast_a and_o our_o lord_n himself_o in_o the_o wilderness_n fast_v as_o many_o to_o leave_v unto_o we_o the_o solemn_a day_n of_o fast_o that_o be_v lent_n hiero._n in_o c._n 58_o esa_n s._n augustine_n also_o have_v the_o very_a like_o word_n ep_v 119._o and_o general_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o by_o occasion_n or_o of_o purpose_n speak_v of_o the_o lent-fast_a make_v it_o not_o only_o a_o imitation_n of_o our_o saviour_n fast_n but_o also_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v keep_v montanum_fw-la contemn_v not_o lend_v say_v s._n ignatius_n for_o it_o contain_v the_o imitation_n of_o our_o lord_n conversation_n and_o s._n ambrose_n say_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v not_o ordain_v by_o man_n but_o consecrate_v by_o god_n nor_o invent_v by_o any_o earthly_a cogitation_n but_o command_v by_o the_o heavenly_a majesty_n and_o again_o that_o it_o be_v sin_n not_o to_o fast_v all_o the_o lent_n s._n hieroms_n word_n also_o be_v most_o plain_a we_o say_v he_o fast_a forty_o day_n or_o make_v one_o lend_v in_o a_o year_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o time_n convenient_a this_o time_n most_o convenient_a be_v as_o s._n augustine_n say_v ep_v 119_o immediate_o before_o easter_n thereby_o to_o communicate_v with_o our_o saviour_n passion_n and_o as_o other_o writer_n do_v add_v thereby_o to_o come_v the_o better_o prepare_v and_o more_o worthy_o to_o the_o great_a solemnity_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n beside_o many_o other_o goodly_a reason_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o for_o brevity_n we_o omit_v see_v good_a christian_a reader_n 12_o notable_a sermon_n of_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a de_fw-fr quadragesi●●_n of_o lent_n namely_o ser._n 6_o and_o 9_o where_o he_o call_v it_o the_o apostle_n ordinance_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n see_v s._n ambrose_n from_o the_o 23_o sermon_n forward_o in_o s._n bernard_n 7_o sermon_n and_o in_o many_o other_o father_n the_o like_a temp_n last_o of_o all_o note_v well_o the_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o affirm_v that_o by_o due_a observation_n thereof_o the_o wicked_a be_v separate_v from_o the_o good_a infidel_n from_o christian_n heretic_n from_o faithful_a catholic_n 6._o it_o be_v write_v heretic_n allege_v scripture_n as_o here_o the_o devil_n do_v in_o the_o false_a sense_n the_o church_n use_v they_o as_o christ_n do_v in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o to_o consute_n their_o falsehood_n aug._n count_n lit_fw-fr petil._n li._n ●_o c._n 〈◊〉_d 10._o 7._o 11._o he_o only_o serve_v it_o be_v not_o say_v say_v s._n augustine_n the_o lord_n thy_o god_n only_o shall_v thou_o ●dore_v dulia_n as_o it_o be_v say_v he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aug._n sup_v gen._n 9_o 61._o whereupon_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v always_o use_v this_o most_o true_a and_o necessary_a distinction_n that_o there_o be_v a_o honour_n dew_n to_o god_n only_o which_o to_o give_v unto_o any_o creature_n be_v idolatry_n and_o there_o be_v a_o honour_n dew_n to_o creature_n also_o according_a to_o their_o dignity_n as_o to_o saint_n holy_a thing_n and_o holy_a place_n see_v euseb_n hist_o ec._n li._n 4._o c._n 14._o s._n hierom._n cont_n vigil_n ep_v 53._o aug._n li._n 10._o ci●it_fw-la c._n 1._o li._n 1_o trin._n c._n 6._o con●_n nic._n 2._o damase_v li._n 1._o de_fw-fr imag._n bed_n in_o 4._o luc._n 17._o do_v penance_n that_o penance_n be_v necessary_a also_o before_o baptism_n for_o such_o as_o be_v of_o age_n as_o johns_n so_o our_o saviour_n preach_v declare_v both_o beginning_n with_o penance_n 23._o heal_v every_o malady_n christ_n say_v s._n augustine_n by_o miracle_n get_v authority_n by_o authority_n find_v credit_n by_o credit_n draw_v together_o a_o multitude_n by_o a_o multitude_n obtain_v antiquity_n by_o antiquity_n fortify_v a_o religion_n which_o nor_o only_a the_o most_o fond_a new_a rise_n of_o heretic_n use_v deceitful_a wile_n but_o neither_o the_o drowsy_a old_a error_n of_o the_o very_a heathen_a with_o violence_n set_v against_o it_o may_v in_o any_o part_n shake_v and_o cast_v down_o aug._n the_o util_a cred_a c._n 14._o chap._n v._n first_o 4._o 3_o he_o promise_v reward_n 13_o and_o he_o lay_v before_o the_o apostle_n their_o office_n 17_o second_o he_o protest_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o must_v keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o that_o more_o exact_o than_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n who_o justice_n weas_z count_v most_o perlite_a but_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v unsufficient_a he_o show_v in_o the_o precept_n of_o 21_o murder_n ●7_n adultery_n ●1_n divorce_n 〈◊〉_d swear_v 38_o revenge_n 42_o usury_n 43_o enemy_n verse_n 1_o and_o see_v the_o multitude_n 20._o he_o *_o go_v up_o into_o a_o mountain_n and_o when_o he_o be_v set_v his_o disciple_n come_v unto_o he_o ✝_o verse_n 2_o and_o open_v his_o mouth_n he_o teach_v they_o say_v ✝_o verse_n 3_o blessed_n be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n catechism_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o blessed_n be_v the_o meek_a for_o they_o shall_v possess_v the_o land_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o bless_v be_v they_o that_o mourn_v martyr_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v comfort_v ✝_o verse_n 6_o blessed_n be_v they_o that_o hunger_n &_o thirst_n after_o justice_n for_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o fill_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o blessed_n be_v the_o merciful_a for_o they_o shall_v obtain_v mercy_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o blessed_n be_v the_o clean_a of_o hart_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n ✝_o verse_n 9_o blessed_n be_v the_o peacemaker_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o god_n ✝_o verse_n 10_o blessed_n be_v they_o that_o suffer_v persecution_n ″_o for_o justice_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ✝_o verse_n 11_o blessed_n be_v you_o when_o they_o shall_v revile_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o &_o speak_v all_o that_o naught_o be_v against_o you_o untrue_o for_o my_o sake_n ✝_o verse_n 12_o be_v glad_a &_o rejoice_v for_o your″_n reward_n be_v very_o great_a in_o heaven_n ⊢_o for_o so_o they_o persecute_v the_o prophet_n that_o be_v before_o you_o ✝_o verse_n 13_o you_o be_v the_o *_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n 50._o ✝_o verse_n 14_o but_o if_o the_o salt_n lose_v his_o virtue_n doctor_n wherewith_o shall_v it_o be_v salt_v it_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o any_o more_o but_o to_o be_v cast_v forth_o 34._o and_o to_o be_v tread_v of_o man_n ✝_o verse_n 15_o you_o be_v the_o ″_o light_a of_o the_o world_n a_o city_n can_v be_v hide_v situate_v on_o a_o mountain_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o neither_o do_v man_n light_v a_o *_o candle_n and_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n 21_o but_o upon_o a_o candlestick_n that_o it_o may_v shine_v to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o
the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v reveal_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n ✝_o verse_n 4_o which_o be_v a_o adversary_n &_o be_v ″_o extol_v saint_n above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o sit_v ″_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o though_o he_o be_v god_n ✝_o verse_n 5_o remember_v you_o not_o that_o when_o i_o be_v yet_o with_o you_o i_o tell_v you_o these_o thing_n ✝_o verse_n 6_o and_o now_o ″_o what_o let_v you_o know_v that_o he_o may_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n ✝_o verse_n 7_o for_o now_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n work_v only_o that_o he_o which_o now_o hold_v do_v hold_v until_o he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n ✝_o verse_n 8_o and_o then_o that_o wicked_a one_o shall_v be_v reveal_v *_o who_o our_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v kill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n 4._o &_o shall_v destroy_v with_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o advent_n he_o ✝_o verse_n 9_o who_o come_a be_v according_a to_o the_o operation_n of_o satan_n ″_o in_o all_o power_n and_o lie_v sign_n and_o wonder_v ✝_o verse_n 10_o and_o in_o all_o seduce_a of_o iniquity_n to_o they_o that_o perish_v for_o that_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o charity_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v ✝_o verse_n 11_o therefore_o 24._o god_n will_v send_v they_o the_o operation_n of_o error_n to_o believe_v lie_v ✝_o verse_n 12_o that_o all_o may_v be_v judge_v which_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o truth_n but_o have_v consent_v to_o iniquity_n ✝_o verse_n 13_o but_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n always_o for_o you_o brethren_n belove_v of_o god_n that_o he_o have_v choose_v you_o firstfruit_n unto_o salvation_n in_o sanctification_n of_o spirit_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o truth_n ✝_o verse_n 14_o into_o the_o which_o also_o he_o have_v call_v you_o by_o our_o gospel_n unto_o the_o purchase_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ✝_o verse_n 15_o therefore_o brethren_n stand_v and_o hold_v 〈◊〉_d the_o ″_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n ✝_o verse_n 16_o and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o and_o god_n &_o our_o father_n which_o have_v love_v we_o and_o have_v give_v eternal_a consolation_n and_o good_a hope_n in_o grace_n ✝_o verse_n 17_o 〈◊〉_d 6._o exhort_v your_o heart_n and_o confirm_v you_o in_o every_o good_a work_n and_o word_n annotation_n chap._n ii_o ●_o a●_n though_o the_o day_n secret_n the_o curiosity_n of_o man_n feed_v by_o satan_n deceit_n have_v seek_v to_o know_v and_o to_o give_v out_o to_o the_o world_n such_o thing_n as_o god_n will_v not_o impart_v to_o he_o nor_o be_v necessary_a or_o profitable_a for_o he_o to_o know_v so_o far_o that_o both_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o often_o afterward_o some_o have_v feign_a revelation_n some_o false_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n some_o presume_v to_o calculate_v and_o conject_v by_o the_o star_n and_o give_v forth_o to_o the_o world_n a_o certain_a time_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n all_o which_o seducer_n be_v here_o note_v in_o the_o person_n of_o some_o that_o be_v about_o to_o deceive_v the_o thessalonian_o therein_o and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 80_o epistle_n ad_fw-la hesychium_n prove_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v by_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o day_n year_n or_o age_n that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n or_o the_o second_o advent_n shall_v be_v ●_o unless_o there_o come_v a_o revolt_n first_o though_o we_o can_v not_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o moment_n hour_n or_o any_o certain_a time_n of_o our_o lord_n come_v antichrist_n yet_o he_o warrant_v we_o that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v before_o certain_a thing_n be_v fulfil_v which_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o course_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o permission_n before_o which_o be_v diverse_a whereof_o in_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v forewarn_v here_o he_o warn_v we_o of_o two_o special_o of_o a_o revolt_n defection_n or_o a_o apostasy_n and_o of_o the_o come_n or_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n which_o two_o pertain_v in_o effect_n both_o to_o one_o either_o depend_v of_o the_o other_o and_o shall_v fall_v as_o it_o may_v be_v think_v near_o together_o and_o therefore_o s_n augustine_n make_v they_o but_o one_o thing_n this_o apostasy_n or_o revolt_n by_o the_o judgement_n in_o manner_n of_o all_o ancient_a writer_n be_v the_o general_a forsake_v &_o fall_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n so_o tertullian_n li._n the_o resur_n carnis_fw-la s._n hierom_n q_o 11_o add_v algasiam_n s._n chrysostom_n ho._n 4._o and_o s._n ambrose_n upon_o this_o place_n s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la li._n 20_o c._n 19_o all_o which_o father_n and_o the_o rest_n *_o caluin_n presump●kously_o condemn_v of_o error_n and_o folly_n herein_o locum_fw-la for_o that_o their_o exposition_n agree_v not_o with_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n blasphemous_a fiction_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v antichrist_n father_n to_o establish_v which_o false_a impiety_n they_o interpret_v this_o revolt_n or_o apostasy_n to_o be_v a_o general_a revolt_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n from_o god_n who_o house_n or_o building_n they_o say_v be_v sudden_o destroy_v and_o lay_v many_o year_n ruin_v and_o rule_v only_o by_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n so_o faith_n the_o foresay_a archheretic_n here_o though_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o defence_n and_o as_o the_o matter_n else_o where_o require_v he_o seem_v as_o all_o their_o fashion_n be_v to_o speak_v in_o other_o place_n quite_o contrary_a but_o with_o such_o colour_n and_o collusion_n of_o word_n that_o neither_o other_o man_n nor_o himself_o can_v tell_v what_o he_o will_v have_v or_o say_v and_o his_o father_n wicleffe_n and_o luther_n his_o fellow_n and_o follower_n illyricus_n beza_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n fall_v from_o christ_n so_o various_a among_o themselves_o and_o so_o contrary_a to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v horrible_a to_o see_v their_o confusion_n and_o a_o pitieful_a case_n that_o any_o reasonable_a man_n will_v follow_v such_o companion_n to_o evident_a perdition_n but_o concern_v ●his_v error_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o church_n defection_n or_o revolt_n god_n it_o be_v refute_v sufficient_o by_o s._n augustine_n against_o the_o donatist_n in_o many_o place_n where_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o fail_v to_o the_o world_n end_n no_o not_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n affirm_v they_o to_o deny_v christ_n and_o to_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o glory_n &_o inheritance_n buy_v with_o his_o blood_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n may_v fail_v or_o perish_v li._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ec._n c._n 12._o 13._o de_fw-fr civit._n li._n 20._o c._n 8._o in_o psal_n 85_o ad_fw-la illud_fw-la tu_fw-la so●u_fw-la deus_fw-la magnus_fw-la ps_n 70_o conc._n 2._o &_o psal_n 60._o de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 8._o s._n hierom_n refute_v the_o same_o wicked_a heresy_n in_o the_o 6._o luciferian_o prove_v against_o they_o that_o they_o make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o poor_a miserable_a christ_n that_o imagine_v the_o church_n his_o body_n may_v either_o perish_v or_o be_v drive_v to_o any_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n both_o of_o they_o answer_n to_o the_o heretic_n argument_n ground_v on_o scripture_n false_o understand_v which_o be_v to_o long_o here_o to_o rehearse_v it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o christian_a reader_n to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o old_a deceit_n and_o excuse_n of_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o forsake_v god_n church_n that_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v or_o remain_v hide_v or_o in_o themselves_o only_o and_o in_o those_o place_n where_o they_o and_o their_o follower_n dwell_o to_o know_v also_o that_o this_o be_v reprove_v by_o the_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v against_o christ_n honour_n power_n providence_n and_o promise_n if_o the_o adversary_n have_v say_v that_o this_o revolt_n which_o the_o apostle_n foretell_v shall_v come_v before_o the_o world_n end_n 18._o be_v mean_v of_o great_a number_n of_o heretic_n &_o apostate_n revolt_n from_o the_o church_n they_o have_v say_v truth_n of_o themselves_o and_o such_o other_o faith_n who_o s._n john_n call_v antichristes_n and_o it_o be_v very_o like_a be_v it_o speak_v under_o the_o correction_n of_o god_n church_n and_o all_o learned_a catholic_n that_o this_o great_a defection_n or_o revolt_n shall_v not_o be_v only_o from_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o special_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o withal_o from_o most_o point_n of_o christian_a religion_n not_o that_o the_o catholic_a christian_n either_o in_o the_o time_n of_o